Selected quad for the lemma: church_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
church_n according_a discipline_n doctrine_n 2,848 5 5.6969 4 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A49602 Conformity of the ecclesiastical discipline of the Reformed churches of France with that of the primitive Christians written by M. La Rocque ... ; render'd into English by Jos. Walker.; Conformité de la discipline ecclésiastique des Protestans de France avec celle des anciennes Chrêtiens. English Larroque, Matthieu de, 1619-1684.; Walker, Joseph. 1691 (1691) Wing L453; ESTC R2267 211,783 388

There are 40 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

the_o mystery_n of_o piety_n and_o of_o religion_n it_o be_v for_o this_o reason_n that_o from_o the_o very_a first_o beginning_n of_o christianity_n they_o have_v public_a school_n wherein_o the_o principal_a matter_n and_o fundamental_a point_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v teach_v as_o have_v be_v prove_v on_o the_o 13_o article_n of_o the_o one_a book_n now_o to_o descend_v low_a i_o observe_v that_o charlemagne_n who_o may_v be_v look_v on_o as_o the_o first_o restorer_n of_o science_n in_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o west_n i_o say_v he_o take_v care_n to_o settle_v school_n in_o monastries_n and_o episcopal_a house_n for_o the_o instruction_n of_o youth_n it_o be_v what_o he_o particular_o enjoin_v in_o his_o capitulary_a 20._o tom._n 2._o conc._n gall._n p._n 152._o c._n 72._o ib_a p._n 215._o c._n 19_o 20._o in_o the_o year_n 789._o theodulph_n bishop_n of_o orleans_n declare_v in_o his_o make_v eight_o year_n after_o the_o other_o that_o there_o be_v several_a school_n in_o his_o diocese_n which_o he_o name_v and_o moreover_o appoint_v to_o have_v other_o in_o the_o country_n and_o in_o village_n the_o second_o council_n of_o chalous_a on_o soan_n make_v a_o decree_n in_o the_o year_n 813._o 3._o ib._n p._n 308._o can._n 3._o which_o deserve_v here_o to_o have_v its_o place_n it_o be_v requisite_a that_o according_a to_o the_o command_n of_o the_o emperor_n charles_n a_o prince_n endow_v with_o singular_a sweetness_n force_n prudence_n justice_n and_o temperance_n bishop_n shall_v establish_v school_n where_o the_o doctrine_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n may_v be_v learned_a and_o where_o person_n may_v be_v instruct_v of_o who_o our_o saviour_n may_v just_o say_v you_o be_v the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o may_v be_v the_o savour_n of_o the_o people_n and_o who_o doctrine_n may_v not_o only_o resist_v sundry_a heresy_n but_o also_o the_o temptation_n of_o antichrist_n and_o the_o antichrist_n himself_o and_o that_o so_o it_o may_v just_o be_v say_v of_o they_o in_o praise_n of_o the_o church_n a_o thousand_o buckler_n and_o the_o arm_n of_o man_n of_o might_n be_v there_o the_o synod_n of_o paris_n 12._o ib._n lib._n 3._o p._n 549._o can._n 12._o term_v the_o vi_o in_o the_o year_n 829._o make_v request_n to_o lewis_n the_o debonnair_a in_o follow_v his_o predecessor_n step_n that_o he_o will_v be_v please_v by_o his_o authority_n to_o procure_v the_o establishment_n of_o some_o public_a school_n at_o least_o in_o three_o of_o the_o most_o convenient_a place_n of_o his_o empire_n to_o the_o end_n that_o his_o father_n and_o his_o pain_n may_v not_o be_v in_o vain_a beside_o that_o this_o establishment_n will_v be_v very_o useful_a and_o glorious_a to_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o that_o by_o this_o action_n he_o will_v make_v his_o name_n immortal_a the_o council_n of_o meaux_n 35._o tom._n 3._o conc._n gall._n p._n 41_o 42._o can._n 35._o in_o the_o year_n 845._o require_v that_o each_o bishop_n have_v a_o learned_a man_n of_o a_o good_a and_o unblameable_a life_n to_o teach_v and_o instruct_v priest_n which_o have_v the_o care_n and_o conduct_v of_o people_n in_o the_o truth_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o observation_n of_o god_n commandment_n and_o to_o enable_v they_o to_o preach_v that_o the_o light_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n may_v shine_v always_o in_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v the_o temple_n of_o the_o live_n god_n it_o be_v also_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o 18_o canon_n of_o the_o 3d_o council_n of_o valentia_n in_o dauphine_n 104._o ib._n p._n 104._o assemble_v ten_o year_n after_o that_o of_o meaux_n of_o the_o 34th_o of_o a_o roman_a synod_n hold_v in_o the_o 9th_o century_n 89._o collect._n rom._n part_n 2._o p._n 43_o 89._o under_o pope_n eugenius_n the_o second_o and_o which_o be_v repeat_v and_o enlarge_v in_o another_o under_o leo_n the_o ivth_o in_o the_o same_o century_n ii_o the_o regent_n and_n schoolmaster_n shall_v sign_v the_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n and_o the_o city_n and_o church_n shall_v not_o receive_v any_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o consistory_n of_o the_o place_n conformity_n the_o regent_n and_o master_n of_o school_n which_o serve_v in_o our_o academy_n especial_o professor_n of_o divinity_n be_v call_v to_o teach_v their_o scholar_n the_o same_o truth_n as_o those_o minister_n be_v oblige_v to_o preach_v to_o their_o congregation_n and_o to_o have_v they_o live_v under_o the_o law_n of_o the_o same_o discipline_n it_o be_v just_a they_o shall_v as_o well_o as_o the_o minister_n sign_n our_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o our_o discipline_n to_o the_o end_n their_o lesson_n may_v be_v always_o conformable_a to_o the_o former_a and_o their_o action_n to_o the_o latter_a as_o well_o in_o regard_n of_o themselves_o as_o of_o those_o which_o depend_v on_o their_o conduct_n i_o will_v not_o here_o repeat_v what_o i_o have_v say_v on_o the_o 9th_o article_n of_o the_o one_a chapter_n and_o which_o may_v convenient_o be_v apply_v to_o that_o we_o now_o examine_v it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o add_v that_o what_o we_o expect_v of_o our_o regent_n be_v in_o substance_n the_o same_o thing_n as_o the_o protestation_n make_v by_o doctor_n in_o university_n among_o the_o latin_n not_o to_o say_v nor_o write_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o council_n iii_o the_o doctor_n and_o professor_n in_o divinity_n shall_v be_v elect_v by_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o province_n where_o the_o academy_n be_v and_o shall_v be_v examine_v as_o well_o by_o the_o lesson_n they_o shall_v make_v on_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n according_a to_o the_o authentic_a text_n of_o hebrew_n and_o greek_a which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v to_o they_o as_o by_o disputation_n of_o one_o or_o more_o day_n as_o shall_v be_v think_v fit_a and_o be_v find_v capable_a if_o they_o be_v not_o pastor_n the_o hand_n of_o fellowship_n shall_v be_v give_v they_o have_v first_o of_o all_o promise_v faithful_o and_o diligent_o to_o discharge_v their_o duty_n and_o to_o teach_v the_o scripture_n with_o all_o purity_n according_a to_o the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n and_o according_a to_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o church_n which_o they_o shall_v subscribe_v conformity_n the_o council_n of_o chalons_n which_o be_v cite_v upon_o the_o first_o article_n refer_v to_o bishop_n and_o by_o consequence_n to_o their_o synod_n the_o choice_n and_o establishment_n of_o those_o which_o be_v to_o teach_v divinity_n and_o the_o mystery_n of_o salvation_n and_o that_o of_o meaux_n which_o we_o also_o cite_v on_o the_o same_o article_n prescribe_v the_o gift_n and_o quality_n as_o well_o for_o the_o doctrine_n as_o the_o life_n and_o conversation_n so_o that_o we_o may_v say_v it_o amount_v near_o to_o the_o establishment_n of_o our_o discipline_n if_o you_o except_o only_o the_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o installation_n whereof_o these_o two_o council_n make_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o pope_n alexander_n the_o 3d_o 660._o tom._n 7._o council_n part_n 2._o p._n 660._o in_o his_o lateran_n council_n an._n 1189._o use_n the_o 18_o canon_n to_o provide_v for_o the_o establish_n and_o preserve_v of_o school_n in_o appoint_v pension_n to_o master_n and_o regent_n it_o be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o 11_o canon_n of_o another_o lateran_n council_n 36_o year_n after_o that_o under_o innocent_a the_o 3d_o which_o also_o declare_v there_o aught_o to_o be_v in_o each_o metropolitan_a church_n a_o doctor_n in_o divinity_n to_o expound_v to_o priest_n and_o other_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o to_o instruct_v they_o in_o thing_n necessary_a for_o the_o guide_n of_o soul_n iv_o to_o the_o end_n there_o may_v be_v always_o good_a store_n of_o pastor_n and_o that_o church_n may_v be_v always_o well_o provide_v with_o person_n capable_a to_o conduct_v they_o and_o to_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o church_n be_v advertise_v to_o elect_a hopeful_a scholar_n such_o as_o be_v already_o well_o advance_v in_o learning_n to_o keep_v they_o at_o university_n that_o there_o they_o may_v be_v fit_v and_o prepare_v to_o be_v employ_v in_o the_o holy_a ministry_n encourage_v the_o child_n of_o poor_a minister_n which_o be_v apt_a for_o learning_n whereof_o the_o colloques_fw-la shall_v take_v notice_n king_n prince_n and_o great_a lord_n shall_v be_v desire_v and_o exhort_v to_o assist_v herein_o and_o to_o contribute_v part_n of_o their_o revenue_n as_o also_o opulent_a church_n the_o colloques_fw-la and_o provincial_a synod_n shall_v give_v advertisement_n where_o and_o when_o they_o shall_v see_v occasion_n and_o shall_v use_v all_o convenient_a mean_n that_o thing_n so_o necessary_a may_v be_v bring_v to_o good_a effect_n and_o if_o single_a church_n can_v do_v it_o
that_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o province_n administer_v all_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o province_n as_o it_o have_v be_v agree_v on_o at_o nice_a that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o vi_o canon_n of_o the_o great_a council_n which_o be_v hold_v in_o that_o city_n under_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n and_o which_o ordain_v to_o preserve_v to_o each_o province_n their_o privilege_n according_a to_o which_o if_o there_o happen_v dispute_v about_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n or_o discipline_n which_o regard_v christian_n in_o general_a it_o will_v not_o be_v decide_v but_o by_o a_o general_a universal_a council_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o a_o council_n compose_v of_o bishop_n of_o the_o five_o patriarch_n within_o the_o compass_n whereof_o be_v enclose_v the_o christian_n of_o the_o roman_a empire_n 8._o in_o append._n t●_n 8._o thence_o it_o be_v that_o the_o friar_n maximus_n in_o barronius_n acknowledge_v no_o legitimate_a council_n unless_o it_o have_v a_o circular_a letter_n make_v by_o consent_n of_o the_o patriarch_n john_n damacen_n write_v 696._o to._n 2._o auct_v court_n f._n p._n 696._o that_o aught_o to_o be_v esteem_v a_o ecumenical_a council_n which_o the_o five_o patriarch_n have_v once_o appoint_v and_o make_v declaration_n of_o but_o if_o there_o want_v any_o one_o patriarch_n or_o that_o he_o refuse_v to_o submit_v thereunto_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v a_o council_n but_o a_o perverse_a congregation_n a_o assembly_n of_o pride_n and_o vanity_n 227._o in_o collect._n rom._n part_n 1._o p._n 227._o it_o be_v also_o for_o the_o same_o reason_n pope_n pelagius_n the_o i._o write_v in_o the_o vi_o century_n that_o if_o there_o arise_v doubt_n in_o any_o one_o mind_n by_o occasion_n of_o a_o universal_a synod_n those_o which_o be_v desirous_a of_o their_o salvation_n must_v consult_v the_o apostolical_a see_v to_o know_v the_o reason_n of_o what_o they_o do_v not_o understand_v in_o the_o preliminary_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a it_o be_v observe_v there_o be_v read_v some_o write_n of_o synod_n which_o prohibit_v the_o assemble_v of_o universal_a council_n or_o at_o least_o of_o hold_v they_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o patriarch_n to._n v._o con._n p._n 518._o iii_o the_o church_n and_o particular_a person_n shall_v be_v advertise_v not_o to_o separate_v from_o the_o sacred_a union_n of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n for_o any_o persecution_n as_o may_v happen_v to_o procure_v to_o themselves_o any_o peace_n or_o liberty_n apart_o those_o which_o do_v otherwise_o shall_v be_v sensure_v as_o the_o colloques_fw-la and_o synod_n shall_v think_v expedient_a conformity_n partiality_n and_o division_n have_v be_v ever_o destructive_a to_o the_o church_n union_n and_o concord_n can_v never_o be_v too_o much_o recommend_v to_o those_o which_o be_v member_n of_o it_o and_o which_o in_o this_o quality_n be_v oblige_v inviolable_o to_o maintain_v peace_n and_o uniformity_n in_o religion_n as_o well_o in_o regard_n of_o doctrine_n as_o of_o worship_n and_o discipline_n it_o be_v the_o reason_n for_o which_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v always_o abhor_a schism_n and_o have_v vigorous_o act_v against_o schismatic_n particular_o against_o the_o novatian_o and_o donatist_n which_o cruel_o rend_v and_o tear_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n iv_o the_o dispute_n of_o religion_n with_o adversary_n shall_v be_v order_v in_o such_o sort_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v aggressor_n and_o if_o they_o be_v engage_v in_o a_o verbal_a dispute_n they_o shall_v do_v it_o but_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n not_o give_v too_o much_o way_n to_o write_n of_o ancient_a doctor_n for_o judge_v and_o decide_v of_o doctrine_n and_o shall_v not_o enter_v into_o regular_n dispute_v but_o by_o write_n mutual_o give_a and_o sign_v and_o as_o for_o public_a dispute_n shall_v not_o engage_v therein_o but_o by_o advice_n of_o their_o consistory_n and_o a_o certain_a number_n of_o pastor_n which_o to_o this_o purpose_n shall_v be_v choose_v by_o the_o colloques_fw-la or_o provincial_a synod_n shall_v not_o engage_v in_o any_o general_a dispute_n or_o conference_n without_o the_o advice_n of_o all_o the_o church_n assemble_v in_o a_o national_a synod_n on_o pain_n of_o the_o minister_n which_o shall_v therein_o enter_v to_o be_v declare_v apostate_n and_o deserter_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n conformity_n there_o be_v find_v in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n sundry_a dispute_n which_o the_o catholic_n and_o orthodox_n doctor_n have_v have_v against_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o truth_n we_o have_v in_o the_o second_o century_n the_o famous_a dispute_n of_o st._n justin_n martyr_n against_o tryphon_n the_o jew_n who_o be_v the_o agressor_n eusebius_n make_v mention_n of_o another_o dispute_n which_o happen_v at_o ancyra_n a_o city_n in_o gallatia_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o century_n betwixt_o a_o catholic_n doctor_n and_o some_o of_o the_o sect_n of_o montanus_n in_o the_o three_o century_n malchus_n a_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n dispute_v earnest_o a_o ainst_a paul_n of_o samosatia_n bishop_n of_o the_o place_n and_o confound_v he_o in_o a_o regular_a dispute_n the_o particular_n of_o which_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o time_n of_o eusebius_n they_o have_v be_v collect_v by_o person_n nominate_v to_o write_v what_o shall_v be_v allege_v on_o both_o part_n in_o the_o same_o century_n be_v see_v another_o famous_a dispute_n betwixt_o archelaus_n bishop_n of_o mesopotamia_n and_o the_o heretic_n manes_n in_o the_o house_n of_o a_o person_n of_o quality_n call_v marcellus_n in_o the_o city_n of_o caschara_n in_o presence_n of_o the_o chief_a inhabitant_n of_o the_o place_n four_o of_o which_o although_o pagan_n be_v choose_v arbitor_n and_o judge_v the_o victory_n to_o archelaus_n this_o dispute_n have_v be_v print_v in_o latin_a some_o year_n pass_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o late_a mounsieur_fw-fr valois_n his_o note_n on_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n of_o socrates_n and_o zozoman_n and_o st._n epiphanius_n treat_v ample_o of_o it_o in_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o manichean_o which_o be_v the_o sixty_o sixth_n i_o may_v instance_n in_o several_a dispute_n principal_o those_o of_o st._n augustine_n against_o sundry_a adversary_n but_o what_o i_o have_v say_v sufficient_o justify_v that_o the_o order_n of_o our_o discipline_n do_v differ_v from_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n although_o it_o appoint_v something_o more_o of_o caution_n in_o the_o manner_n of_o dispute_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o way_n of_o our_o former_a and_o present_a circumstance_n of_o live_v among_o our_o enemy_n in_o this_o kingdom_n v._o the_o church_n shall_v understand_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a assembly_n of_o colloques_fw-la and_o synod_n as_o well_o provincial_a as_o national_a be_v the_o band_n and_o support_v of_o union_n and_o concord_n against_o the_o schism_n heresy_n and_o all_o other_o inconvenient_n to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v use_v all_o endeavour_n and_o apply_v themselves_o by_o all_o mean_n that_o the_o say_v ecclesiastical_a assembly_n may_v be_v continue_v and_o maintain_v and_o in_o case_n some_o church_n and_o particular_a person_n will_v not_o contribute_v to_o the_o charge_n needful_a to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o ecclesiastical_a assembly_n such_o shall_v be_v sure_o sensure_v as_o deserter_n of_o the_o holy_a communion_n which_o shall_v be_v among_o we_o the_o minister_n also_o which_o shall_v not_o promote_v what_o be_v above_o contain_v shall_v be_v grievous_o sensure_v by_o the_o provincial_a synod_n conformity_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o all_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n which_o be_v more_o strict_o enjoin_v than_o the_o hold_n of_o synod_n where_o the_o conductor_n of_o church_n be_v oblige_v to_o be_v as_o shall_v be_v show_v on_o the_o eight_o chap._n and_o where_o by_o consequence_n they_o be_v to_o go_v at_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n which_o they_o serve_v this_o be_v collect_v from_o the_o eighteen_o cannon_n of_o the_o three_o council_n of_o toledo_n assemble_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 589_o for_o it_o ordain_v that_o instead_o of_o assemble_v in_o synod_n twice_o a_o year_n according_a to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o cannon_n 405._o tom._n 4._o conc._n p._n 405._o they_o shall_v assemble_v but_o once_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o poverty_n of_o the_o church_n of_o spain_n chap._n vii_o of_o colloques_fw-la article_n i._n in_o each_o province_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o division_n of_o church_n according_a to_o the_o number_n of_o they_o and_o the_o conveniency_n of_o place_n into_o class_n or_o colloques_fw-la the_o most_o contiguous_a and_o this_o partition_n shall_v be_v make_v by_o authority_n of_o the_o provincial_a synod_n and_o the_o neighbour_n church_n shall_v so_o assemble_v in_o colloques_fw-la twice_o a_o year_n or_o four_o time_n a_o year_n if_o it_o may_v be_v do_v according_a
practice_v but_o it_o be_v much_o better_a to_o refer_v to_o the_o reader_n the_o liberty_n of_o judge_v of_o our_o innocence_n when_o he_o shall_v have_v read_v the_o whole_a treatise_n for_o beside_o that_o i_o can_v refute_v these_o injury_n and_o slander_n without_o discover_v person_n who_o have_v late_o be_v forward_o this_o way_n unless_o i_o will_v write_v a_o volume_n and_o not_o a_o preface_n will_v i_o undertake_v to_o answer_v particular_o to_o all_o the_o false_a accusation_n which_o they_o have_v allege_v to_o render_v our_o religion_n odious_a in_o censure_v our_o discipline_n lay_v therefore_o apart_o these_o unjust_a accuser_n it_o be_v needful_a before_o end_v this_o preface_n that_o i_o speak_v a_o little_a of_o some_o other_o who_o learning_n and_o reputation_n be_v better_a know_v and_o ground_v and_o yet_o nevertheless_o go_v by_o a_o false_a zeal_n or_o by_o some_o other_o motive_n unknown_a to_o i_o tread_v in_o the_o step_n of_o the_o other_o do_v no_o less_o cruel_o devour_v we_o i_o speak_v of_o those_o gentleman_n which_o accuse_v we_o of_o overthrow_v the_o moral_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o certain_a doctrine_n which_o we_o teach_v a_o unjust_a accusation_n if_o ever_o there_o be_v one_o for_o if_o we_o destroy_v the_o sanctity_n of_o the_o gospel_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v of_o necessity_n that_o that_o which_o we_o follow_v must_v be_v pernicious_a and_o how_o can_v it_o be_v that_o our_o moral_n shall_v be_v corrupt_a see_v it_o produce_v a_o holy_a discipline_n who_o rule_n and_o direction_n be_v so_o many_o mark_n of_o the_o maxim_n of_o true_a morality_n i_o will_v not_o be_v the_o judge_n i_o desire_v they_o will_v only_o read_v what_o i_o have_v write_v to_o prove_v the_o resemblance_n of_o our_o discipline_n with_o that_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o i_o be_o persuade_v that_o read_n it_o without_o prejudice_n they_o will_v free_o confess_v that_o my_o parallel_n be_v just_a and_o that_o i_o have_v draw_v the_o picture_n so_o like_o the_o original_a that_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o know_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o there_o be_v so_o much_o resemblance_n betwixt_o they_o after_o which_o i_o may_v be_v permit_v to_o infer_v from_o the_o holiness_n of_o our_o discipline_n the_o sanctity_n of_o our_o moral_n and_o from_o the_o holiness_n of_o our_o moral_n and_o of_o our_o discipline_n the_o truth_n of_o our_o doctrine_n and_o by_o consequence_n the_o purity_n of_o our_o religion_n i_o know_v it_o be_v not_o absolute_o impossible_a but_o that_o there_o may_v be_v a_o corrupt_a moral_a with_o a_o good_a doctrine_n for_o although_o ordinary_o these_o thing_n march_v together_o and_o that_o the_o sanctity_n of_o the_o one_o be_v follow_v with_o the_o purity_n of_o the_o other_o nevertheless_o it_o may_v so_o happen_v that_o some_o may_v undertake_v to_o join_v a_o pure_a doctrine_n with_o a_o corrupt_a moral_a or_o a_o holy_a moral_a with_o dangerous_a doctrine_n nevertheless_o because_o the_o moral_a natural_o follow_v the_o doctrine_n that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n a_o orthodox_n doctrine_n produce_v a_o virtuous_a moral_a and_o that_o when_o the_o doctrine_n be_v true_a the_o law_n of_o the_o moral_a be_v just_a i_o allow_v that_o those_o which_o belch_v out_o false_a accusation_n against_o we_o as_o enemy_n of_o the_o moral_n of_o jesus_n christ_n i_o desire_v they_o will_v judge_v of_o our_o doctrine_n by_o our_o moral_n because_o than_o they_o will_v judge_v of_o our_o moral_n by_o our_o discipline_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o just_a than_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o one_o by_o the_o other_o if_o our_o discipline_n then_o be_v pure_a it_o will_v follow_v that_o our_o moral_n be_v holy_a and_o by_o consequence_n our_o doctrine_n be_v true_a by_o their_o own_o confession_n if_o they_o say_v that_o our_o discipline_n be_v not_o pure_a they_o accuse_v of_o impurity_n that_o of_o the_o primitive_a church_n see_v we_o be_v a_o faithful_a copy_n and_o representation_n of_o it_o if_o they_o confess_v it_o be_v good_a than_o they_o must_v confess_v that_o all_o our_o religion_n be_v pure_a see_v its_o doctrine_n be_v true_a the_o moral_a holy_a and_o the_o discipline_n blameless_a they_o may_v forbear_v then_o write_v such_o great_a volume_n to_o vent_v untruth_n nor_o take_v such_o wide_a circuit_n to_o build_v on_o ill_a principle_n and_o to_o draw_v false_a and_o unjust_a consequence_n for_o there_o be_v nothing_o false_a than_o what_o they_o write_v that_o we_o destroy_v the_o moral_a of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o our_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n i_o say_v illegitimate_a for_o if_o the_o very_a consequence_n they_o impute_v to_o we_o may_v be_v draw_v from_o our_o doctrine_n which_o can_v be_v yet_o they_o can_v not_o in_o equity_n be_v impute_v to_o we_o because_o that_o far_o from_o own_v they_o to_o be_v we_o we_o abhor_v they_o with_o our_o soul_n what_o have_v we_o do_v to_o those_o gentleman_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v the_o object_n of_o their_o malice_n and_o spite_n where_o be_v the_o gentleness_n and_o moderation_n which_o the_o spirit_n of_o jesus_n christ_n inspire_v where_o be_v that_o christian_a charity_n that_o think_v no_o harm_n will_v they_o recover_v at_o our_o charge_n what_o they_o have_v lose_v will_v they_o be_v receive_v into_o favour_n by_o our_o prejudice_n and_o make_v we_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o appease_v a_o party_n that_o will_v suppress_v they_o and_o against_o which_o they_o be_v no_o long_o able_a to_o resist_v must_v they_o needs_o quarrel_v with_o we_o because_o they_o can_v not_o succeed_v in_o their_o design_n heaven_n do_v not_o prosper_v man_n endeavour_n when_o the_o flesh_n have_v as_o great_a a_o share_n in_o it_o as_o the_o spirit_n when_o we_o mingle_v our_o interest_n with_o those_o of_o god_n when_o we_o make_v religion_n serve_v the_o world_n and_o when_o we_o go_v about_o to_o make_v i_o know_v not_o what_o mixture_n of_o the_o onion_n and_o garlic_n of_o egypt_n with_o the_o milk_n of_o canaan_n the_o time_n will_v come_v when_o we_o shall_v all_o appear_v before_o the_o dreadful_a tribunal_n upon_o which_o shall_v sit_v a_o incorruptible_a judge_n who_o read_v in_o our_o heart_n and_o search_v into_o the_o bottom_n of_o our_o soul_n will_v make_v we_o give_v a_o account_n of_o our_o most_o secret_a thought_n of_o our_o word_n and_o our_o action_n and_o happy_a will_v those_o be_v who_o conduct_n be_v sincere_a and_o who_o action_n have_v faith_n and_o charity_n for_o their_o principle_n and_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n for_o their_o end_n advertisement_n the_o stationer_n have_v in_o his_o hand_n the_o attestation_n of_o monsieur_n cartaut_n and_o mounseur_fw-fr le_fw-fr page_n minister_n at_o diep_n and_o another_o of_o mounseur_fw-fr le_fw-fr gendre_n minister_n at_o roven_n declare_v they_o have_v examine_v this_o work_n and_o that_o they_o have_v find_v nothing_o in_o it_o contrary_a to_o their_o religion_n in_o honorem_fw-la ejus_fw-la qui_fw-la ex_fw-la anglorum_fw-la genere_fw-la natus_fw-la hoc_fw-la opus_fw-la ex_fw-la gallorum_n idiomate_fw-la in_fw-la anglicum_fw-la transtulit_fw-la ante_n oculos_fw-la posuit_fw-la nostros_fw-la celeberrimus_fw-la author_n lumina_fw-la quae_fw-la priscos_fw-la daunt_v prope_fw-la quosque_fw-la patres_fw-la hique_fw-la patre_fw-la sacrum_fw-la domini_fw-la daunt_v tempore_fw-la coetum_fw-la quique_fw-la eadem_fw-la nostri_fw-la tempora_fw-la coetus_fw-la habet_fw-la os_fw-la avidum_fw-la romae_fw-la potuit_fw-la sic_fw-la claudere_fw-la cleave_v ille_fw-la decus_fw-la per_fw-la i_o perferat_fw-la egregium_fw-la est_fw-la alius_fw-la quisquam_fw-la divino_fw-la numine_fw-la fretus_fw-la primam_fw-la cvi_fw-la generis_fw-la praebuit_fw-la ipsa_fw-la diem_fw-la magna_fw-la britannia_fw-la qui_fw-la pugnaces_fw-la quosve_a britannos_fw-la edocet_fw-la hoc_fw-la verum_fw-la voce_fw-la suâ_fw-la patriae_fw-la inter_fw-la eos_fw-la igitur_fw-la sit_fw-la gloria_fw-la utrique_fw-la vicissim_fw-la eximioque_fw-la patri_fw-la praesidioque_fw-la gravi_fw-la desaguliers_n m._n dom._n domino_fw-la walkero_fw-la in_fw-la versionem_fw-la disciplinae_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la reformatarum_fw-la apud_fw-la gallos_n quae_fw-la tibi_fw-la plus_fw-la debet_fw-la walkere_fw-la britannia_n forté_fw-fr gallia_n forté_fw-fr tuus_fw-la seruit_fw-la utrique_fw-la labour_n nostrorum_fw-la scripta_fw-la exornas_fw-la sermone_fw-la diserto_fw-la externis_fw-la ange_fw-fr divitiis_fw-la patriam_fw-la l._n rival_n sur_fw-fr le_fw-fr même_fw-fr pour_fw-fr explication_n en_fw-fr francois_n sonnet_n l'autheur_fw-fr de_fw-fr cet_fw-fr ouurage_fw-fr ij_o paroit_fw-fr dés_fw-fr la_fw-fr france_n excellent_a tout_fw-fr à_fw-fr fait_fw-fr &_o meet_v devant_fw-fr nos_fw-la yeux_fw-fr avec_fw-fr beaucoup_fw-fr de_fw-fr soin_fw-fr &_o beaucoup_fw-fr de_fw-fr prudence_n les_fw-fr pére_n de_fw-fr se_fw-fr siécle_n &_o ceux_fw-fr du_fw-fr siécle_fw-fr vieux_fw-fr son_n travail_n clairement_n montre_fw-fr que_fw-fr nôtre_fw-fr enfance_n est_fw-fr celle_fw-fr des_fw-fr vicillar_n qui_fw-fr possedent_n les_fw-fr ciel_fw-fr rome_n tu_fw-la dois_fw-fr bannir_fw-fr ta_fw-fr lache_n médisance_n pour_v la_fw-fr dissiper_n toute_fw-fr on_o ne_fw-fr peut_fw-fr fair_a mieux_fw-fr l'autheur_fw-fr mérite_fw-fr
read_v the_o holy_a scripture_n see_v they_o have_v receive_v the_o office_n of_o preacher_n and_o have_v observe_v that_o the_o dumb_a minister_n be_v not_o fit_a to_o instruct_v his_o flock_n the_o assembly_n declare_v that_o the_o true_a pastor_n ought_v to_o find_v out_o those_o who_o be_v under_o his_o care_n either_o to_o instruct_v they_o without_o arrogance_n if_o they_o be_v ignorant_a 10._o tom._n 1._o conc._n gall._n ibid._n c._n 3_o &_o 10._o or_o to_o rejoice_v with_o they_o for_o the_o progress_n they_o have_v make_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o their_o salvation_n the_o council_n of_o reims_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 813._o enjoin_v bishop_n and_o pastor_n in_o the_o 14_o canon_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o all_o the_o world_n the_o vith_o of_o arles_n in_o the_o same_o year_n require_v that_o all_o the_o business_n of_o bishop_n shall_v be_v instruction_n and_o preach_v because_o ignorance_n be_v the_o mother_n of_o all_o error_n and_o that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v teach_v not_o only_o in_o city_n but_o also_o in_o the_o parish_n in_o the_o year_n 858._o herald_n bishop_n of_o tours_n make_v a_o capitulary_a take_v out_o of_o ancient_a canon_n in_o the_o 9th_o of_o which_o he_o appoint_v that_o priest_n shall_v preach_v to_o all_o the_o faithful_a 111._o tom_n 3_o conc_fw-fr gall._n p._n 111._o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n the_o incarnation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n his_o death_n resurrection_n his_o ascension_n the_o gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o remission_n of_o sin_n to_o all_o which_o may_v be_v add_v the_o 58th_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n if_o after_o the_o decree_n of_o council_n we_o consult_v the_o ancient_a doctor_n they_o will_v also_o testify_v that_o minister_n be_v particular_o call_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n and_o to_o declare_v to_o their_o hearer_n the_o word_n of_o truth_n my_o sheep_n say_v to_o this_o purpose_n gregory_n nazianzen_n 440._o orat._n 25._o p_o 440._o my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o which_o i_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o divine_a oracle_n which_o i_o have_v preach_v ever_o after_o one_o manner_n throughout_o the_o whole_a course_n of_o my_o life_n without_o comply_v with_o the_o time_n and_o which_o i_o will_v never_o forbear_v to_o preach_v 266._o tom._n 4._o p._n 266._o and_o st._n jerom_n in_o his_o 3d_o book_n of_o commentary_n upon_o the_o 16_o chapter_n of_o jeremiah_n say_v it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o pastor_n to_o teach_v it_o be_v what_o the_o put_v the_o bible_n on_o their_o head_n at_o their_o ordination_n shall_v put_v they_o in_o mind_n of_o this_o will_v appear_v yet_o more_o plain_o if_o after_o have_v consider_v the_o subject_a and_o argument_n of_o minister_n preach_v the_o gospel_n we_o also_o examine_v the_o matter_n which_o according_a to_o our_o discipline_n shall_v be_v plain_a conformable_a to_o the_o scripture_n fit_a to_o edify_v free_a from_o intricate_a school-question_n and_o from_o all_o ostentation_n let_v we_o now_o inquire_v if_o the_o ancient_a christian_n do_v otherwise_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n 185._o tom._n 1._o p_o 110._o paris_n 1574._o ibid._n p._n 185._o in_o the_o year_n 398._o which_o we_o have_v often_o cite_v desire_v in_o the_o one_a canon_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n shall_v be_v teach_v with_o simplicity_n origen_n in_o his_o 16_o homily_n upon_o leviticus_n desire_v the_o word_n may_v be_v preach_v to_o purpose_n and_o that_o one_o shall_v accommodate_v himself_o to_o the_o capacity_n of_o each_o person_n in_o give_v milk_n to_o some_o and_o strong_a meat_n to_o other_o and_o in_o the_o seven_o hom._n upon_o joshua_n 393._o ibid._n l._n 2._o p._n 393._o he_o advise_v to_o shun_v the_o beauty_n pomp_n and_o ornament_n of_o rhetorical_a philosopher_n poet_n and_o writer_n of_o the_o age_n of_o who_o valentine_n basilides_n and_o marcian_n learn_v their_o heresy_n in_o the_o 9th_o book_n of_o his_o commentary_n on_o the_o 12_o chap._n of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n he_o say_v so_o much_o care_n must_v not_o be_v take_v to_o please_v the_o hearer_n as_o to_o work_v on_o their_o affection_n and_o to_o inspire_v into_o they_o the_o love_n of_o virtue_n observe_v on_o this_o occasion_n that_o it_o often_o happen_v that_o the_o most_o eloquent_a and_o sublime_a preacher_n only_o tickle_v the_o ear_n with_o please_a word_n of_o humane_a learning_n but_o do_v not_o work_v on_o the_o heart_n whereas_o many_o time_n those_o which_o study_n plainess_n and_o preach_v without_o affectation_n convert_v many_o to_o the_o faith_n humble_a the_o proud_a and_o bring_v sinner_n to_o repentance_n st._n busil_n in_o his_o moral_n say_v several_a thing_n which_o agree_v very_o well_o with_o the_o article_n who_o conformity_n we_o seek_v to_o find_v with_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n for_o example_n 26._o tom._n 2._o reg._n 70._o c._n 5_o 6_o 7_o 23_o 26._o that_o one_o must_v not_o teach_v otherwise_o than_o we_o have_v learn_v in_o the_o gospel_n that_o we_o must_v preach_v all_o thing_n our_o saviour_n have_v prescribe_v to_o we_o in_o the_o gospel_n and_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o apostle_n and_o all_o thing_n conformable_a to_o they_o that_o those_o to_o who_o the_o preach_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v commit_v shall_v not_o conceal_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v please_v to_o god_n fear_v lest_o they_o shall_v render_v they_o elf_n guilty_a of_o the_o death_n of_o those_o which_o perish_v that_o the_o word_n of_o god_n must_v not_o be_v preach_v for_o ostentation_n nor_o flatter_v those_o which_o hear_v it_o the_o more_o to_o serve_v our_o own_o pleasure_n or_o conveniency_n but_o act_n as_o if_o we_o speak_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n in_o his_o presence_n and_o that_o to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n one_o must_v not_o make_v use_n of_o any_o prerogative_n or_o advantage_n that_o shall_v advance_v we_o above_o other_o fear_v lest_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n shall_v be_v frustrate_v thereby_o there_o can_v nothing_o in_o the_o world_n be_v see_v more_o conformable_a to_o our_o discipline_n in_o the_o main_a all_o i_o have_v say_v on_o this_o article_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o precept_n and_o example_n of_o st._n paul_n i_o say_v on_o his_o precept_n 3.2_o 2_o tim._n 1.13_o &_o 2.14_o &_o 3.2_o hold_v fast_o say_v he_o to_o timothy_n the_o form_n of_o sound_a word_n which_o thou_o have_v hear_v of_o i_o in_o faith_n and_o love_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n of_o these_o thing_n put_v they_o in_o remembrance_n charge_v they_o before_o the_o lord_n that_o they_o strive_v not_o about_o word_n to_o no_o profit_n but_o to_o the_o subvert_v of_o the_o hearer_n preach_v the_o word_n 3.3_o 2_o tim._n 3.3_o be_v instant_a in_o season_n out_o of_o season_n reprove_v rebuke_n exhort_v with_o all_o long-suffering_a and_o doctrine_n reprove_v those_o who_o have_v itch_a ear_n make_v teacher_n after_o their_o own_o mind_n 2.14_o 1_o cor._n 1.17_o &_o 2.14_o i_o say_v in_o the_o next_o place_n according_a to_o his_o example_n for_o he_o declare_v that_o jesus_n christ_n send_v he_o not_o to_o baptise_v but_o to_o preach_v not_o with_o wisdom_n of_o word_n nor_o with_o excellence_n of_o speech_n and_o that_o his_o preach_v be_v not_o in_o flatter_a word_n of_o humane_a wisdom_n xiii_o the_o church_n be_v warn_v more_o frequent_o to_o use_v catechise_v and_o minister_n to_o treat_v and_o expound_v it_o by_o succinct_a question_n and_o answer_n simple_a and_o familiar_a accommodate_v themselves_o to_o the_o people_n capacity_n without_o enter_v into_o long_a common-place_n discourse_n it_o be_v also_o the_o duty_n of_o minister_n to_o catechise_v each_o one_o of_o their_o flock_n once_o or_o twice_o a_o year_n and_o to_o exhort_v every_o one_o to_o come_v diligent_o to_o be_v catechise_v conformity_n the_o instruction_n of_o the_o people_n be_v the_o end_n which_o jesus_n christ_n propose_v in_o establish_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o word_n it_o be_v worthy_a the_o prudence_n of_o those_o which_o be_v call_v to_o teach_v other_o to_o begin_v by_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o chief_a essential_o of_o religion_n and_o which_o be_v the_o easy_a to_o be_v understand_v as_o be_v the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o religion_n the_o summary_n whereof_o we_o have_v contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n therefore_o it_o be_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n catechism_n be_v institute_v wherein_o be_v familiar_o explain_v to_o the_o catechumeny_n the_o doctrine_n of_o heaven_n the_o knowledge_n whereof_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o without_o which_o they_o can_v not_o receive_v the_o benefit_n of_o baptism_n of_o this_o kind_n for_o instance_n be_v the_o catechism_n of_o st._n cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n wherein_o he_o explain_v the_o article_n of_o
occasion_n charitable_o to_o help_v their_o neighbour_n without_o any_o expectation_n of_o profit_n provide_v that_o do_v it_o in_o any_o wise_a hinder_v they_o from_o their_o principal_a employment_n and_o call_v in_o such_o a_o case_n it_o be_v absolute_o forbid_v 1672._o pandect_a can._n to._n 2._o p._n 129._o oxford_n 1672._o as_o the_o patriarch_n lucas_n of_o constantinople_n do_v to_o his_o deacon_n theodoret_n indeed_o make_v mention_n of_o one_o certain_a person_n he_o call_v peter_n which_o he_o represent_v as_o a_o very_a good_a man_n and_o he_o observe_v in_o the_o letter_n 114_o and_o 115_o that_o he_o have_v be_v honour_v with_o priestly_a dignity_n and_o that_o nevertheless_o he_o practise_a physic_n but_o it_o plain_o appear_v by_o what_o he_o say_v 1642._o theodor._n tom._n 3._o p._n 988._o paris_n 1642._o that_o this_o man_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o the_o service_n of_o any_o church_n although_o in_o be_v contrary_a too_o to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o so_o nothing_o hinder_v but_o that_o he_o may_v common_o practice_v physic_n moreover_o nothing_o hinder_v but_o to_o this_o article_n may_v be_v apply_v canon_n 6.81_o and_o 83._o of_o the_o apostle_n the_o example_n of_o gerantius_n bishop_n of_o nicomedia_n mention_v by_o z●zomen_n may_v here_o find_v place_n have_v his_o ordination_n be_v legitimate_a 6._o l._n 8._o c._n 6._o for_o be_v a_o very_a good_a physician_n he_o be_v very_o helpful_a to_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o nicomedia_n who_o bewail_v he_o much_o after_o his_o be_v depose_v xx._n minister_n shall_v exhort_v their_o flock_n to_o observe_v modesty_n in_o their_o apparel_n they_o themselves_o in_o this_o and_o all_o other_o thing_n give_v good_a example_n abstain_v from_o all_o bravery_n in_o clothes_n themselves_o their_o wife_n and_o child_n conformity_n the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v very_o careful_a in_o recommend_v to_o christian_n the_o modesty_n prescribe_v in_o our_o discipline_n especial_o to_o woman_n which_o more_o common_o transgress_v its_o law_n than_o man_n do_v clement_n of_o alexandria_n neglect_v no_o pain_n to_o induce_v they_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o this_o virtue_n 1641._o lib._n 2._o padag_n c._n 12._o p._n 211_o 212._o paris_n 1641._o for_o have_v allege_v these_o word_n of_o st._n paul_n in_o like_a manner_n also_o that_o woman_n adorn_v themselves_o in_o modest_a apparel_n with_o shamefacedness_n and_o sobriety_n not_o with_o braid_a hair_n or_o gold_n or_o pearl_n or_o costly_a array_n but_o which_o become_v woman_n profess_v godliness_n with_o good_a work_n 1_o tim._n 2.9_o 10._o after_o this_o i_o say_v this_o ancient_a doctor_n show_v that_o see_v apparel_n be_v only_o give_v we_o but_o for_o a_o cover_v there_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v any_o superfluity_n in_o it_o that_o the_o holy_a ornament_n of_o the_o hand_n be_v not_o bracelet_n but_o a_o readiness_n we_o shall_v have_v to_o distribute_v our_o good_n to_o those_o which_o be_v in_o distress_n and_o the_o care_v one_o shall_v take_v in_o conduct_v one_o family_n that_o that_o of_o the_o foot_n be_v a_o promptness_n to_o do_v good_a and_o a_o walk_n in_o the_o way_n of_o justice_n that_o modesty_n and_o pudor_fw-la be_v the_o chain_n and_o collar_n which_o god_n himself_o have_v make_v and_o that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o real_a ornament_n but_o that_o of_o wisdom_n that_o woman_n ought_v not_o to_o suffer_v their_o ear_n to_o be_v bore_v to_o hang_v jewel_n in_o they_o but_o to_o have_v they_o ever_o open_a to_o hear_v the_o instruction_n shall_v be_v give_v they_o and_o turn_v their_o eye_n to_o the_o contemplation_n of_o heavenly_a thing_n and_o in_o the_o same_o treatise_n he_o speak_v so_o much_o against_o needless_a and_o superfluous_a dress_n and_o apparel_n that_o i_o on_o purpose_n forbear_v recite_v all_o he_o say_v satisfy_v myself_o to_o observe_v in_o general_a that_o he_o fear_v not_o to_o affirm_v that_o under_o the_o delicacy_n of_o these_o worldly_a dress_n there_o be_v find_v not_o the_o image_n of_o god_n but_o that_o of_o the_o devil_n tertullian_n speak_v in_o the_o same_o term_n exhort_v christian_n woman_n to_o show_v by_o the_o modesty_n of_o their_o apparel_n the_o difference_n there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o servant_n of_o god_n and_o those_o of_o the_o devil_n he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o be_v a_o example_n to_o those_o who_o do_v not_o profess_v the_o gospel_n and_o that_o god_n may_v be_v glorify_v in_o their_o body_n by_o go_v clothe_v suitable_a to_o modesty_n and_o shamefac'dness_n and_o that_o when_o they_o go_v out_o of_o their_o house_n they_o shall_v be_v adorn_v with_o raiment_n of_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n with_o probity_n chastity_n and_o innocence_n by_o this_o mean_n obtain_v for_o themselves_o the_o blessing_n of_o god_n st._n cyprian_n follow_v the_o step_n of_o tertullian_n who_o he_o style_v his_o master_n and_o he_o condemn_v with_o no_o less_o severity_n than_o the_o other_o all_o the_o superfluous_a ornament_n of_o the_o age_n and_o all_o those_o worldly_a dress_n which_o say_v he_o 1666._o de_fw-fr habit_n virg._n p._n 165._o paris_n 1666._o serve_v to_o no_o other_o end_n but_o to_o hide_v what_o god_n have_v form_v in_o man_n and_o to_o discover_v what_o the_o devil_n have_v invent_v i_o shall_v be_v over-tedious_a to_o transcribe_v what_o have_v be_v say_v on_o this_o subject_a by_o saint_n chrysostom_n that_o golden_a tongue_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n read_v only_o his_o 8_o homily_n on_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o the_o one_a to_o timothy_n and_o one_o shall_v see_v the_o manner_n he_o treat_v of_o it_o and_o with_o what_o eloquence_n he_o declaim_v against_o the_o pride_n and_o sumptuousness_n of_o apparel_n the_o niceness_n of_o dress_n against_o paint_v curl_v the_o hair_n pendant_n in_o the_o ear_n pearl_n and_o all_o sort_n of_o jewel_n to_o all_o which_o thing_n he_o oppose_v shamefac'dness_n modesty_n and_o decency_n the_o use_n and_o practice_v whereof_o he_o earnest_o recommend_v isidorus_n of_o pellusia_n have_v very_o judicious_o observe_v 1638._o l._n 5._o ep._n 200._o paris_n 1638._o that_o these_o outward_a ornament_n be_v prejudicial_a to_o a_o beautiful_a woman_n and_o to_o one_o that_o be_v not_o so_o to_o the_o one_o because_o it_o reproach_n she_o with_o her_o ugliness_n and_o the_o other_o because_o people_n be_v take_v up_o in_o talk_v of_o her_o ornament_n and_o say_v nothing_o of_o herself_o xxi_o it_o be_v convenient_a to_o desire_v prince_n and_o other_o lord_n which_o follow_v the_o court_n that_o have_v or_o will_v have_v church_n order_v in_o their_o house_n to_o take_v their_o minister_n from_o church_n due_o reform_v and_o where_o there_o be_v more_o than_o one_o with_o sufficient_a assurance_n of_o their_o lawful_a vocation_n and_o by_o leave_n of_o the_o collogue_n or_o synod_n the_o which_o shall_v first_o sign_v the_o confession_n of_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o this_o kingdom_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n and_o to_o the_o end_n the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n may_v have_v the_o great_a success_n they_o shall_v also_o be_v desire_v each_o of_o they_o to_o erect_v in_o their_o family_n a_o consistory_n compose_v of_o the_o minister_n and_o of_o the_o godly_a and_o best_a approve_a person_n of_o the_o family_n which_o shall_v be_v elect_v elder_n and_o deacon_n to_o a_o competent_a number_n by_o which_o consistory_n the_o scandal_n and_o vice_n of_o the_o say_a family_n shall_v be_v suppress_v and_o the_o order_n of_o the_o common_a discipline_n of_o the_o church_n maintain_v moreover_o the_o say_a minister_n shall_v attend_v the_o provincial_a synod_n as_o oft_o as_o they_o can_v possible_o to_o this_o end_n notice_n shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n which_o shall_v assemble_v the_o synod_n to_o call_v they_o unto_o it_o but_o especial_o the_o say_a minister_n or_o part_n of_o they_o as_o they_o shall_v be_v depute_v by_o the_o rest_n shall_v not_o fail_v appear_v at_o national_a synod_n and_o shall_v come_v also_o accompany_v with_o the_o elder_n who_o may_v inform_v the_o say_a synod_n of_o their_o life_n and_o conversation_n and_o when_o they_o shall_v meet_v several_a of_o they_o together_o none_o of_o they_o must_v pretend_v pre-eminence_n or_o lordship_n over_o the_o other_o according_a to_o the_o article_n of_o discipline_n and_o when_o the_o say_v lord_n and_o prince_n shall_v reside_v in_o their_o house_n or_o other_o place_n where_o there_o be_v a_o church_n establish_v the_o better_a to_o prevent_v division_n they_o shall_v be_v humble_o desire_v that_o the_o church_n of_o their_o family_n may_v join_v with_o that_o of_o the_o place_n to_o make_v but_o one_o church_n as_o shall_v be_v agree_v upon_o by_o a_o friendly_a conference_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o both_o part_n to_o do_v what_o shall_v be_v most_o expedient_a conformity_n in_o the_o year_n of_o
within_o his_o jurisdiction_n 328._o tom._n 5._o council_n p._n 328._o and_o if_o there_o shall_v be_v any_o one_o find_v so_o do_v he_o shall_v be_v no_o long_o bishop_n and_o let_v he_o only_o perform_v the_o function_n of_o priest_n xxvi_o the_o minister_n which_o shall_v intrude_v himself_o although_o he_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o people_n be_v not_o to_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o neighbour-minister_n or_o other_o but_o notice_n must_v be_v give_v of_o it_o to_o the_o colloque_n or_o provincial_a synod_n conformity_n the_o council_n of_o antioch_n which_o i_o have_v several_a time_n cite_v absolute_o authorise_v this_o rule_n in_o the_o 16_o canon_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o these_o word_n if_o a_o bishop_n out_o of_o employment_n intrude_v himself_o into_o a_o vacant_a church_n and_o usurp_v the_o place_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o full_a synod_n let_v he_o be_v turn_v out_o although_o he_o may_v be_v approve_v of_o all_o the_o people_n which_o he_o shall_v have_v gain_v to_o he_o the_o 35th_o canon_n of_o the_o african_a code_n contain_v a_o solemn_a decree_n against_o these_o pastor_n which_o have_v by_o their_o slight_n insinuate_v into_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o people_n intrude_v themselves_o into_o church_n without_o any_o lawful_a vocation_n so_o far_o that_o the_o 3d_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o make_v this_o decree_n in_o the_o year_n 307._o appoint_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v drive_v away_o by_o public_a authority_n pope_n gelasius_n the_o be_v it_o enjoin_v almost_o the_o same_o in_o his_o 9th_o epistle_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o lucania_n tom._n 3._o council_n pag._n 936._o xxvii_o minister_n shall_v not_o be_v send_v to_o other_o church_n without_o authentic_a letter_n or_o other_o sufficient_a testimony_n from_o the_o place_n from_o whence_o they_o shall_v be_v send_v the_o which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o consistory_n whither_o they_o be_v send_v to_o be_v careful_o lay_v up_o conformity_n beside_o the_o canon_n i_o have_v mention_v upon_o the_o precedent_a article_n and_o which_o do_v alike_o favour_v this_o there_o be_v also_o other_o which_z no_o less_o confirm_v it_o for_o example_n those_o which_o forbid_v to_o receive_v to_o the_o communion_n in_o another_o church_n a_o ecclesiastical_a person_n which_o can_v show_v a_o certificate_n from_o his_o bishop_n and_o those_o also_o which_o enjoin_v bishop_n to_o contain_v themselves_o within_o their_o diocese_n without_o intrude_a into_o another_o as_o we_o have_v make_v appear_v and_o as_o may_v be_v far_o prove_v by_o the_o 10_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o be_v common_o call_v the_o one_a and_o which_o be_v assemble_v under_o gratus_n in_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 348_o or_o 49._o tom._n i._o conc._n p._n 566._o to_o all_o which_o may_v be_v add_v the_o 33d_o can._n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o express_o forbid_v to_o receive_v any_o churchman_n without_o letter_n of_o recommendation_n and_o without_o due_a examination_n and_o the_o 41st_o of_o laodicea_n in_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n the_o letter_n now_o speak_v of_o be_v call_v letter_n of_o congee_n whereof_o we_o will_v speak_v more_o on_o the_o four_o article_n of_o the_o four_o chapter_n xxviii_o no_o minister_n for_o say_v he_o be_v forsake_v of_o his_o church_n or_o persecute_v shall_v thereupon_o be_v receive_v by_o another_o church_n until_o that_o by_o good_a certificate_n he_o shall_v make_v appear_v to_o the_o synod_n or_o colloque_n how_o he_o shall_v have_v behave_v and_o govern_v himself_o and_o the_o whole_a shall_v be_v refer_v to_o the_o prudence_n and_o discretion_n of_o a_o colloque_n or_o provincial_a synod_n conformity_n this_o article_n also_o tend_v to_o nothing_o else_o but_o to_o restrain_v the_o enterprise_n of_o such_o minister_n as_o shall_v insinuate_v themselves_o into_o church_n without_o be_v call_v or_o not_o have_v good_a testimony_n of_o their_o behaviour_n and_o of_o the_o cause_n wherefore_o they_o pretend_v to_o be_v forsake_v of_o their_o church_n therefore_o it_o be_v that_o our_o discipline_n refer_v the_o decision_n of_o these_o matter_n to_o the_o discretion_n of_o synod_n according_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o antioch_n in_o the_o year_n 34._o can._n 16._o xxix_o when_o a_o minister_n find_v himself_o destitute_a of_o a_o church_n have_v due_o obtain_v leave_n and_o his_o discharge_n from_o that_o which_o he_o former_o serve_v it_o belong_v to_o the_o colloque_n or_o provincial_a synod_n to_o provide_v for_o he_o in_o a_o month_n time_n and_o if_o in_o that_o time_n he_o be_v not_o provide_v for_o by_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o province_n or_o colloque_n he_o shall_v be_v at_o his_o own_o liberty_n to_o provide_v for_o himself_o of_o a_o church_n any_o where_o else_o without_o the_o province_n where_o god_n shall_v enable_v he_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o discipline_n conformity_n this_o rule_n intimate_v something_o more_o than_o the_o former_a for_o it_o speak_v of_o minister_n destitute_a of_o a_o church_n after_o have_v obtain_v licence_n from_o those_o they_o serve_v and_o of_o have_v for_o good_a and_o sufficient_a cause_n be_v remove_v and_o who_o nevertheless_o be_v not_o suffer_v to_o settle_v in_o any_o other_o but_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o colloques_fw-la and_o synod_n according_a to_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n xxx_o power_n be_v give_v to_o provincial_a synod_n to_o change_v minister_n for_o certain_a consideration_n their_o church_n be_v hear_v and_o their_o reason_n well_o and_o due_o examine_v but_o in_o case_n of_o discord_n all_o shall_v be_v determine_v at_o a_o national_a synod_n until_o which_o time_n nothing_o shall_v be_v innovate_v conformity_n the_o translate_n of_o pastor_n from_o one_o church_n to_o another_o have_v be_v strict_o prohibit_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n by_o reason_n of_o abuse_n which_o have_v be_v therein_o commit_v and_o because_o these_o translation_n be_v common_o the_o effect_n of_o ambition_n and_o covetousness_n for_o seldom_o any_o be_v translate_v from_o a_o great_a to_o a_o less_o church_n but_o frequent_o and_o almost_o always_o from_o a_o less_o to_o a_o great_a the_o 15_o canon_n of_o the_o one_a council_n of_o nice_a the_o 21_o of_o that_o at_o antioch_n in_o the_o year_n 341._o the_o one_a of_o the_o synod_n of_o sardis_n in_o the_o year_n 347_o and_o several_a other_o prohibit_v these_o sort_n of_o change_n which_o have_v no_o other_o motive_n as_o the_o father_n of_o sardis_n say_v but_o covetousness_n ambition_n and_o a_o desire_n to_o domineer_v nevertheless_o all_o these_o prohibition_n have_v not_o hinder_v but_o several_a bishop_n have_v be_v transfer_v from_o one_o church_n to_o another_o 37._o lib_fw-la 7._o c_o 35_o 36_o 37._o socrates_n in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n recite_v a_o great_a many_o example_n of_o these_o translation_n make_v before_o and_o after_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a pope_n boniface_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o five_o century_n establish_v perigenes_n bishop_n of_o corinth_n 52._o collect._n rom_n part_n 1._o p._n 52._o whereas_o before_o he_o be_v of_o patras_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o letter_n write_v by_o this_o pope_n to_o rufus_n bishop_n of_o thessalonica_n socrates_n also_o cite_v this_o example_n but_o that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v imagine_v that_o all_o these_o translation_n be_v nothing_o but_o the_o ill_a effect_n of_o the_o relaxation_n of_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o ancient_a christian_n and_o that_o they_o be_v not_o countenance_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o some_o canon_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v there_o be_v some_o occasion_n wherein_o these_o change_n be_v allow_v as_o for_o example_n for_o the_o great_a edify_n of_o the_o church_n in_o such_o a_o case_n it_o be_v permit_v to_o translate_v a_o pastor_n from_o one_o church_n to_o another_o provide_v it_o be_v do_v by_o consent_n of_o the_o synod_n as_o our_o discipline_n do_v prescribe_v the_o 14_o of_o the_o canon_n attribute_v to_o the_o apostle_n explain_v itself_o after_o this_o manner_n it_o be_v not_o permitt●●_n for_o a_o bishop_n to_o leave_v his_o church_n to_o go_v to_o another_o although_o he_o shall_v be_v desire_v and_o invite_v thither_o by_o a_o great_a many_o unless_o there_o be_v some_o great_a reason_n that_o oblige_v he_o to_o it_o as_o that_o his_o preach_a might_n there_o tend_v to_o great_a edification_n and_o there_o cause_v a_o great_a growth_n of_o piety_n neither_o yet_o ought_v he_o to_o do_v it_o of_o his_o own_o accord_n but_o by_o the_o exhortation_n and_o judgement_n of_o several_a bishop_n the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n assemble_v in_o the_o year_n 398_o make_v a_o like_a ordinance_n to_o that_o in_o the_o 27_o can._n for_o have_v prohibit_v to_o go_v by_o ambition_n from_o one_o church_n to_o another_o it_o add_v that_o if_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o church_n be_v advance_v thereby_o it_o may_v
it_o know_v abroad_o conformity_n those_o who_o we_o call_v student_n be_v young_a man_n which_o study_v divinity_n and_o which_o resolve_v one_o day_n to_o exercise_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o because_o this_o office_n do_v consist_v alone_a in_o preach_v the_o word_n but_o general_o in_o all_o thing_n which_o one_o ought_v to_o do_v wise_o to_o govern_v the_o flock_n it_o be_v with_o great_a reason_n that_o under_o certain_a condition_n we_o suffer_v they_o to_o enter_v into_o the_o consistory_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v there_o learn_v after_o what_o way_n they_o be_v to_o act_v when_o it_o shall_v please_v almighty_a god_n to_o commit_v the_o care_n of_o some_o church_n unto_o they_o vii_o a_o magistrate_n may_v be_v call_v to_o the_o office_n of_o a_o elder_a in_o the_o consistory_n provide_v that_o the_o exercise_n of_o the_o one_o office_n do_v not_o interfere_v with_o the_o other_o and_o may_v not_o be_v prejudicial_a to_o the_o church_n conformity_n what_o i_o have_v say_v to_o the_o 5_o article_n may_v very_o well_o be_v apply_v to_o this_o viii_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v regulate_v according_a to_o the_o discipline_n as_o it_o have_v be_v order_v by_o the_o national_a synod_n and_o no_o church_n nor_o province_n shall_v make_v any_o law_n but_o what_o in_o substance_n shall_v be_v conformable_a to_o the_o general_a article_n of_o the_o discipline_n to_o this_o purpose_n the_o article_n of_o the_o say_a discipline_n shall_v be_v read_v in_o the_o consistory_n at_o least_o at_o the_o time_n of_o celebrate_v the_o lord_n supper_n and_o the_o elder_n and_o deacon_n shall_v be_v exhort_v to_o have_v a_o copy_n thereof_o each_o of_o they_o to_o read_v and_o study_v it_o at_o home_n at_o leisure_n conformity_n in_o the_o ancient_a church_n it_o be_v not_o permit_v to_o a_o province_n much_o less_o to_o a_o particular_a church_n to_o make_v any_o constitution_n which_o be_v not_o conformable_a to_o the_o canon_n which_o be_v the_o discipline_n of_o those_o time_n contrary_a to_o which_o nothing_o be_v to_o be_v establish_v especial_o after_o the_o canon_n which_o compose_v this_o discipline_n have_v be_v authorize_v by_o any_o ecumenical_a council_n as_o the_o code_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v by_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n this_o also_o shall_v be_v far_o clear_v by_o the_o remark_n i_o will_v make_v on_o the_o second_o article_n of_o the_o follow_a chapter_n ix_o the_o cognisance_n of_o scandal_n and_o the_o censure_n of_o they_o appertain_v to_o the_o company_n of_o pastor_n and_o elder_n and_o whole_a consistory_n can_v be_v impeach_v nor_o above_o half_a however_o accusation_n shall_v be_v of_o force_n against_o particular_a person_n of_o the_o say_a consistory_n as_o well_o pastor_n as_o elder_n admit_v by_o the_o say_a consistory_n and_o they_o be_v adjudge_v shall_v proceed_v on_o notwithstanding_o appeal_v on_o admission_n or_o rejection_n of_o the_o say_a accusation_n conformity_n what_o i_o have_v write_v on_o the_o 3d_o article_n of_o the_o 3d_o chap._n serve_v as_o a_o commentary_n on_o this_o without_o be_v necessary_a to_o say_v any_o more_o x._o the_o custom_n which_o be_v find_v to_o be_v use_v in_o some_o place_n of_o make_v inquest_n and_o a_o general_a censure_n of_o misdemeanour_n in_o the_o public_a assembly_n of_o the_o people_n and_o in_o presence_n both_o of_o man_n and_o woman_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o church_n be_v advertise_v to_o abstain_v from_o it_o and_o to_o be_v satisfy_v with_o the_o order_n contain_v in_o the_o discipline_n as_o to_o what_o regard_v censure_n conformity_n see_v what_o have_v be_v observe_v on_o the_o 51._o article_n of_o the_o one_a chapter_n xi_o the_o elder_n may_v be_v advertise_v not_o to_o report_v misdemeanour_n to_o the_o consistory_n without_o great_a reason_n for_o it_o neither_o shall_v any_o one_o be_v call_v to_o the_o consistory_n without_o good_a cause_n or_o reason_n conformity_n the_o elder_n have_v be_v establish_v to_o watch_v over_o the_o life_n and_o conversation_n of_o those_o which_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n as_o i_o have_v make_v appear_v there_o be_v no_o question_n to_o be_v make_v but_o they_o shall_v do_v it_o with_o prudence_n and_o charity_n xii_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n one_o shall_v forbear_v as_o much_o as_o possible_a may_v be_v as_o well_o from_o all_o formality_n as_o from_o the_o term_n common_o use_v in_o court_n of_o justice_n conformity_n the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o church_n be_v of_o a_o very_a different_a nature_n from_o common-law-court_n it_o be_v convenient_a the_o proceed_n shall_v be_v quite_o different_a and_o that_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n one_o shall_v avoid_v as_o much_o as_o may_v be_v the_o formality_n of_o the_o bar_n read_v the_o discipline_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n for_o example_n the_o code_n of_o canon_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o which_o i_o speak_v just_a now_o and_o i_o be_o well_o assure_v they_o shall_v there_o find_v proceed_n very_o different_a from_o the_o conduct_n and_o stile_n of_o what_o be_v do_v in_o the_o common-law-court_n i_o know_v that_o the_o tribunal_n of_o bishop_n at_o this_o time_n have_v too_o great_a correspondence_n with_o that_o of_o secular_a court_n but_o i_o know_v also_o it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o the_o beginning_n and_o that_o the_o ancient_a christian_n govern_v themselves_o quite_o otherwise_o xiii_o believer_n shall_v be_v exhort_v by_o the_o consistory_n yea_o require_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n to_o speak_v truth_n for_o as_o much_o as_o that_o do_v it_o at_o all_o derogate_a from_o the_o magistrate_n authority_n as_o also_o the_o usual_a formality_n in_o make_v oath_n practise_v before_o magistrate_n shall_v not_o be_v use_v conformity_n this_o establishment_n have_v nothing_o in_o it_o but_o what_o be_v very_o agreeable_a to_o the_o use_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n as_o i_o may_v prove_v by_o sundry_a testimony_n i_o shall_v only_o instance_n in_o two_o which_o the_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o chalcedon_n give_v we_o see_v that_o in_o one_o and_o the_o other_o 131._o conc._n ephes_n p._n 2._o act._n 1._o tom._n 2._o con._n p._n 264_o 265_o catch_n acts._n tom._n 3._o p._n 131._o they_o exhort_v and_o conjure_v the_o bishop_n by_o the_o holy_a gospel_n to_o speak_v the_o truth_n if_o these_o two_o council_n have_v make_v no_o difficulty_n to_o do_v so_o towards_o bishop_n wherefore_o shall_v not_o the_o ecclesiastical_a synod_n as_o origen_n speak_v have_v power_n to_o do_v so_o to_o particular_a person_n as_o occasion_n shall_v require_v fourteen_o in_o difference_n which_o shall_v happen_v the_o party_n shall_v be_v exhort_v by_o the_o consistory_n to_o be_v reconcile_v by_o all_o friendly_a mean_n but_o the_o consistory_n shall_v not_o appoint_v arbitrator_n nor_o shall_v do_v the_o office_n of_o arbitrator_n if_o any_o of_o the_o say_a body_n be_v call_v to_o be_v arbitrator_n it_o shall_v be_v only_o as_o a_o particular_a person_n and_o in_o their_o own_o name_n only_o conformity_n this_o article_n be_v take_v from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o st._n paul_n 6._o 1_o cor._n 6._o which_o exhort_v believer_n to_o compose_v their_o difference_n and_o law-suit_n in_o a_o amicable_a manner_n and_o to_o choose_v out_o some_o among_o their_o brethren_n to_o who_o judgement_n they_o may_v refer_v the_o decision_n of_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o cause_n debate_n and_o strife_n among_o they_o st._n chrysostom_n and_o theodoret_n explain_v the_o word_n of_o the_o apostle_n do_v full_o confirm_v what_o be_v ordain_v by_o our_o discipline_n xv._o beside_o the_o admonition_n which_o be_v make_v by_o the_o consistory_n to_o those_o as_o have_v do_v amiss_o if_o it_o so_o happen_v that_o great_a censure_n and_o punishment_n must_v be_v use_v it_o shall_v be_v either_o suspension_n or_o deprivation_n for_o a_o time_n from_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n or_o excommunication_n and_o retrenchment_n from_o the_o church_n and_o the_o consistory_n shall_v be_v advertise_v to_o proceed_v wary_o and_o to_o distinguish_v betwixt_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o as_o also_o prudent_o to_o weigh_v and_o examine_v the_o fault_n and_o scandal_n which_o they_o shall_v be_v inform_v of_o together_o with_o all_o circumstance_n the_o better_a to_o judge_v what_o censure_n it_o shall_v require_v conformity_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o frequent_a nor_o better_o establish_v in_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n than_o what_o we_o do_v here_o prescribe_v so_o that_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a long_o to_o insist_v on_o a_o matter_n the_o truth_n whereof_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o prove_v by_o a_o great_a number_n of_o testimony_n be_v it_o not_o to_o spare_v the_o reader_n a_o trouble_n the_o primitive_a christian_n do_v just_a as_o
be_v injustice_n to_o refuse_v it_o to_o the_o christian_a church_n see_v also_o jesus_n christ_n her_o head_n and_o spouse_n have_v command_v we_o in_o his_o gospel_n to_o look_v on_o he_o that_o refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n as_o a_o pagan_a and_o heathen_a that_o be_v to_o say_v 18.17_o matt._n 18.17_o he_o will_v that_o he_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n or_o that_o he_o be_v excommunicate_v which_o amount_v all_o to_o one_o thing_n st._n paul_n have_v express_v this_o action_n by_o deliver_v over_o to_o satan_n 1_o cor._n 5.5_o 1_o tim._n 1.20_o unless_o one_o will_v say_v that_o there_o be_v something_o more_o in_o st._n paul_n excommunication_n than_o in_o that_o design_v by_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n however_o it_o be_v the_o governor_n of_o church_n strengthen_v by_o the_o command_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n and_o by_o the_o example_n of_o his_o apostle_n have_v always_o exercise_v this_o ecclesiastical_a power_n against_o enormous_a and_o scandalous_a sin_n tertullian_n and_o origen_n have_v show_v on_o the_o fifteen_o article_n that_o it_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o their_o time_n which_o be_v also_o verify_v by_o the_o place_n i_o have_v cite_v out_o of_o the_o same_o origen_n on_o the_o precedent_a article_n and_o by_o another_o of_o tertullian_n who_o write_v in_o his_o book_n of_o pudicity_fw-la chap_n 4._o that_o these_o sinner_n shall_v be_v drive_v away_o from_o the_o enclosure_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o place_n of_o the_o assembly_n and_o this_o be_v the_o great_a and_o true_a excommunication_n whereas_o the_o other_o be_v only_o a_o privation_n from_o the_o sacrament_n to_o these_o two_o witness_n we_o may_v join_v st._n cyprian_n contemporary_a with_o origen_n who_o very_o often_o in_o his_o epistle_n make_v mention_v of_o this_o censure_n edit_n ep._n 28.38_o 55_o 62_o of_o the_o last_o edit_n when_o he_o speak_v of_o remove_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o not_o communicate_v with_o some_o one_o to_o banish_v and_o to_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n to_o condemn_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o pastor_n to_o kill_v with_o the_o spiritual_a sword_n and_o other_o expression_n he_o use_v to_o declare_v the_o same_o thing_n the_o ten_o of_o the_o canon_n attribute_v to_o the_o apostle_n do_v not_o suffer_v we_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o this_o ancient_a discipline_n see_v he_o excommunicate_v he_o that_o pray_v with_o a_o excommunicate_v person_n in_o the_o house_n only_o i_o will_v enlarge_v no_o far_o see_v one_o must_v make_v a_o volume_n if_o one_o will_v collect_v all_o the_o canon_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n which_o treat_v of_o excommunication_n and_o more_o also_o shall_v one_o treat_v of_o the_o history_n of_o interdiction_n which_o pope_n to_o render_v their_o power_n more_o formidable_a have_v send_v abroad_o in_o these_o last_o age_n contrary_a to_o the_o use_n and_o practice_v of_o the_o primitive_a church_n to_o which_o they_o be_v utter_o unknown_a as_o for_o the_o order_n which_o be_v to_o be_v follow_v according_a to_o our_o discipline_n before_o debar_v a_o sinner_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n beside_o that_o it_o be_v ground_v on_o the_o law_n and_o precept_n of_o charity_n it_o be_v also_o conformaable_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n 185._o hom._n in_o jos_n tom._n 1._o p._n 185._o who_o by_o origen_n report_n reprove_v and_o warn_v the_o guilty_a three_o several_a time_n before_o they_o come_v to_o this_o last_o extremity_n thence_o it_o be_v also_o the_o same_o method_n be_v observe_v when_o there_o be_v any_o mention_n of_o depose_v a_o ecclesiastical_a person_n because_o in_o sundry_a occasion_n the_o same_o fault_n which_o deserve_a deposition_n of_o a_o churchman_n be_v punish_v with_o excommunication_n in_o a_o secular_a as_o appear_v by_o divers_a canon_n particular_o by_o the_o six_o and_o seven_o of_o the_o first_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o ephesus_n where_o we_o find_v these_o word_n if_o they_o be_v bishop_n calced_a see_v the_o can._n 8_o &_o 17._o of_o the_o counc_fw-la of_o calced_a or_o other_o of_o the_o clergy_n which_o be_v depose_v the_o bishop_n from_o episcopacy_n the_o other_o from_o the_o degree_n they-held_a in_o the_o clergy_n from_o whence_o they_o be_v quite_o exclude_v but_o if_o they_o be_v lay_v person_n let_v they_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o we_o have_v make_v appear_v on_o the_o 49th_o artic._n of_o chap._n 1._o that_o a_o bishop_n be_v cite_v three_o time_n or_o any_o other_o ecclesiastical_a person_n before_o proceed_v to_o his_o depose_n i_o do_v insist_v on_o the_o form_n of_o excommunication_n repeat_v after_o the_o article_n on_o which_o i_o have_v make_v the_o necessary_a remark_n because_o it_o be_v in_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o church_n in_o such_o like_a occasion_n to_o make_v use_n of_o what_o term_n it_o shall_v judge_v most_o fit_v provide_v that_o in_o the_o main_a it_o do_v depart_v from_o the_o bound_n which_o the_o gospel_n do_v prescribe_v nor_o from_o the_o example_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n neither_o do_v we_o see_v that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o be_v confine_v to_o the_o use_n of_o a_o sorm_n of_o word_n when_o any_o one_o be_v excommunicate_v those_o which_o condemn_v sinner_n to_o that_o punishment_n have_v be_v always_o master_n of_o the_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o excommunication_n which_o be_v always_o the_o same_o in_o substance_n what_o variety_n soever_o there_o may_v be_v in_o the_o form_n wherein_o it_o be_v conceive_v xvii_o for_o the_o future_a all_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n confirm_v by_o the_o provincial_a synod_n shall_v continue_v firm_a as_o also_o all_o sentence_n of_o suspension_n from_o the_o lord_n supper_n give_v by_o the_o consistory_n the_o which_o not_o be_v publish_v to_o the_o people_n shall_v hold_v good_a although_o the_o party_n suspend_v appeal_v to_o the_o colloque_n or_o provincial_a synod_n conformity_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o this_o article_n but_o what_o be_v very_o conformable_a to_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n according_a to_o which_o each_o church_n have_v power_n to_o inflict_v throughout_o the_o whole_a extent_n of_o its_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n the_o necessary_a punishment_n and_o censure_n against_o all_o sort_n of_o offence_n so_o that_o when_o a_o bishop_n have_v excommunicate_v any_o one_o none_o but_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o province_n can_v take_v off_o the_o excommunication_n as_o there_o be_v none_o but_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o whole_a diocese_n which_o comprehend_v several_a province_n which_o can_v reverse_v the_o sentence_n of_o a_o provincial_a synod_n therefore_o it_o be_v that_o the_o six_o canon_n of_o the_o first_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o constantinople_n the_o 9_o and_o 17._o of_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n suffer_v to_o appeal_v from_o the_o bishop_n to_o the_o provincial_a synod_n and_o from_o the_o provincial_n to_o that_o of_o the_o whole_a diocese_n of_o which_o we_o have_v a_o resemblance_n in_o our_o national_a synod_n xix_o those_o which_o have_v desert_v the_o profession_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n to_o embrace_v idolatry_n if_o they_o persist_v in_o this_o apostasy_n after_o mean_n use_v to_o return_v they_o to_o the_o flock_n they_o shall_v public_o be_v declare_v apostate_n to_o wit_n those_o who_o late_o shall_v turn_v to_o be_v such_o unless_o the_o consistory_n shall_v think_v such_o a_o publication_n to_o cause_v some_o notable_a damage_n and_o prejudice_n to_o the_o church_n in_o which_o case_v nothing_o shall_v be_v do_v but_o by_o advice_n of_o the_o provincial_a synod_n as_o for_o those_o which_o of_o a_o long_a time_n shall_v be_v revolt_v the_o execution_n of_o this_o publication_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o discretion_n of_o consistory_n conformity_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n idolatry_n and_o apostasy_n be_v in_o several_a place_n exclude_v from_o pardon_n and_o absolution_n 8._o tom._n 1._o conc._n p._n 232_o 236._o tom._n 1._o conc._n gall._n p._n 8._o during_o the_o two_o first_o century_n of_o christianity_n as_o be_v make_v appear_v by_o the_o first_o and_o 46._o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o eliberi_n assemble_v anno_fw-la dom._n 305._o and_o by_o the_o last_o of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o arles_n in_o the_o year_n 314_o but_o it_o also_o appear_v by_o these_o same_o canon_n that_o bare_a apostasy_n be_v not_o without_o hope_n of_o be_v pardon_v by_o the_o church_n but_o only_o when_o it_o be_v accompany_v with_o idolatry_n which_o the_o ancient_a christian_n look_v upon_o as_o the_o black_a of_o all_o crime_n 71._o paran_n ad_fw-la poen_n tom._n 3._o bib._n pat._n pag._n 71._o and_o the_o most_o heinous_a of_o all_o sin_n but_o the_o great_a council_n of_o nice_a remove_v this_o difference_n in_o the_o 11_o canon_n and_o make_v they_o all_o hope_n to_o find_v absolution_n in_o a_o certain_a time_n as_o well_o idolater_n as_o mere_a apostate_n
several_a place_n be_v exclude_v from_o all_o hope_n of_o pardon_n in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n as_o be_v make_v appear_v by_o the_o 16_o canon_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o ancyra_n in_o the_o year_n 314._o xxvi_o those_o which_o in_o a_o church_n shall_v fall_v into_o idolatry_n thereupon_o shall_v come_v to_o live_v in_o another_o church_n where_o the_o fault_n be_v not_o know_v shall_v confess_v their_o fault_n only_o in_o consistory_n on_o condition_n that_o return_v to_o the_o say_a church_n which_o they_o have_v offend_v they_o also_o acknowledge_v their_o fault_n public_o in_o it_o however_o refer_v to_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o consistory_n to_o do_v otherwise_o if_o they_o shall_v so_o think_v expedient_a for_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n the_o same_o judgement_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o all_o other_o fault_n which_o shall_v require_v public_a confession_n conformity_n among_o the_o primitive_a christian_n when_o a_o sinner_n have_v be_v excommunicate_v in_o a_o church_n when_o he_o have_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o its_o body_n or_o only_o debar_v from_o the_o holy_a table_n another_o church_n be_v not_o permit_v to_o receive_v he_o without_o the_o consent_n of_o that_o which_o have_v inflict_v the_o punishment_n it_o be_v by_o this_o principle_n that_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o see_v be_v vacant_a after_o the_o death_n of_o its_o bishop_n hygin_n about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 150._o will_v not_o receive_v martion_n to_o the_o communion_n because_o he_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o his_o own_o father_n who_o be_v bishop_n for_o have_v debauch_v a_o young_a woman_n we_o can_v say_v they_o 303._o apud_fw-la epiphan_n petau_n haer._n 42._o p._n 303._o do_v this_o without_o the_o order_n of_o your_o venerable_a father_n in_o theodoret_n alexander_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n complain_v to_o alexander_n bishop_n of_o constantinople_n that_o some_o bishop_n have_v receive_v to_o the_o communion_n some_o person_n which_o he_o have_v excommunicate_v the_o 5_o canon_n of_o the_o great_a council_n of_o nice_n express_o forbid_v it_o as_o also_o several_a other_o which_o it_o be_v needless_a to_o allege_v but_o when_o there_o be_v no_o sentence_n give_v against_o a_o sinner_n that_o he_o have_v not_o appear_v before_o the_o guide_n to_o acknowledge_v his_o sin_n or_o to_o be_v convict_v of_o it_o and_o that_o by_o consequence_n he_o have_v not_o be_v excommunicate_v it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o if_o he_o retire_v into_o another_o church_n where_o the_o fault_n be_v not_o commit_v he_o there_o will_v be_v treat_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o christian_a charity_n without_o pay_v the_o satisfaction_n which_o he_o owe_v to_o that_o which_o he_o have_v scandalize_v in_o case_n he_o return_v to_o it_o it_o be_v just_a what_o be_v prescribe_v by_o our_o discipline_n whereas_o there_o be_v not_o that_o i_o know_v of_o any_o positive_a decree_n in_o the_o ancient_a canon_n on_o a_o matter_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o that_o which_o we_o examine_v although_o it_o may_v be_v reasonable_o think_v there_o be_v by_o what_o be_v practise_v in_o other_o occasion_n xxvii_o all_o offence_n confess_v and_o reparation_n make_v for_o they_o shall_v be_v strike_v out_o of_o the_o consistory_n book_n except_o those_o which_o be_v join_v with_o rebellion_n have_v be_v censure_v with_o suspension_n from_o the_o lord_n supper_n or_o excommunication_n conformity_n as_o there_o be_v only_o public_a fault_n and_o scandalous_a sin_n which_o be_v to_o be_v satisfy_v for_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o people_n there_o be_v great_a likelihood_n that_o in_o the_o first_o age_n the_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n keep_v not_o a_o register_n of_o other_o of_o a_o less_o quality_n and_o which_o deserve_v not_o to_o suffer_v the_o pain_n of_o public_a penance_n or_o at_o least_o if_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v write_v they_o be_v careful_o expunge_v after_o the_o sinner_n have_v do_v what_o be_v require_v of_o they_o in_o presence_n of_o the_o conductor_n and_o that_o the_o necessary_a censure_n have_v be_v apply_v to_o they_o otherwise_o what_o the_o church_n have_v ever_o careful_o distinguish_v have_v be_v confound_v and_o embroil_v xxviii_o consistory_n shall_v not_o give_v certificate_n to_o magistrate_n by_o act_n nor_o otherwise_o nor_o particular_a member_n of_o consistory_n shall_v discover_v unto_o any_o the_o confession_n of_o penitent_n which_o voluntary_o or_o by_o admonition_n give_v they_o shall_v have_v confess_v their_o fault_n unto_o they_o unless_o it_o be_v in_o case_n of_o treason_n conformity_n there_o be_v nothing_o more_o judicious_a than_o this_o rule_n which_o enjoin_v to_o keep_v the_o secret_a of_o confession_n make_v by_o sinner_n of_o their_o fault_n either_o to_o the_o body_n of_o consistory_n or_o to_o any_o particular_a person_n whereof_o they_o be_v compose_v except_o the_o crime_n of_o treason_n because_o in_o effect_n the_o seal_n of_o confession_n shall_v not_o be_v regard_v when_o there_o be_v question_n of_o the_o sacred_a person_n of_o king_n and_o of_o the_o safety_n of_o their_o estate_n there_o be_v no_o subject_n of_o what_o degree_n or_o quality_n soever_o he_o be_v that_o in_o this_o occasion_n be_v not_o bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o disclose_v the_o secret_a which_o have_v be_v reveal_v to_o he_o otherwise_o he_o render_v himself_o guilty_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o deserve_v to_o be_v exemplary_o punish_v by_o the_o law_n of_o men._n xxix_o proceed_v shall_v be_v make_v by_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n even_o to_o excommunication_n against_o those_o which_o say_v they_o be_v of_o the_o religion_n shall_v cite_v pastor_n and_o elder_n or_o all_o the_o consistory_n before_o the_o magistrate_n to_o make_v they_o give_v testimony_n against_o delinquent_n which_o shall_v have_v confess_v their_o fault_n before_o they_o conformity_n the_o 11_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n anno_fw-la dom._n 341._o express_o prohibit_n bishop_n and_o priest_n to_o address_v themselves_o to_o the_o emperor_n for_o any_o business_n without_o the_o consent_n and_o letter_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n especial_o of_o the_o metropolitan_a and_o the_o 12_o deprive_v they_o of_o the_o liberty_n of_o defend_v themselves_o and_o leave_v they_o no_o hope_n of_o re-establishment_n if_o after_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o their_o synod_n they_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o emperor_n instead_o of_o address_v themselves_o to_o a_o great_a synod_n for_o example_n to_o that_o of_o the_o whole_a diocese_n compose_v of_o the_o bishop_n of_o several_a province_n the_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o constantinople_n assemble_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 381._o appoint_v in_o the_o 6_o canon_n not_o to_o receive_v the_o testimony_n of_o those_o which_o despise_v the_o authority_n of_o provincial_a synod_n and_o of_o those_o of_o the_o whole_a diocese_n have_v the_o confidence_n to_o implore_v justice_n of_o the_o emperor_n or_o of_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n because_o say_v the_o father_n they_o do_v injury_n to_o the_o canon_n and_o they_o overthrow_v all_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n xxx_o as_o for_o crime_n which_o shall_v be_v disclose_v to_o minister_n by_o those_o which_o demand_v counsel_n and_o consolation_n minister_n be_v enjoin_v not_o to_o reveal_v they_o to_o magistrate_n fear_v lest_o blame_n shall_v be_v draw_v on_o the_o ministry_n and_o sinner_n shall_v be_v discourage_v for_o the_o future_a to_o come_v to_o repentance_n and_o make_v confession_n of_o their_o fault_n which_o shall_v stand_v good_a in_o all_o crime_n confess_v except_o it_o be_v treason_n conformity_n what_o i_o have_v write_v on_o the_o 28_o article_n suffice_v for_o explanation_n of_o this_o which_o in_o substance_n contain_v the_o same_o thing_n xxxi_o if_o one_o or_o more_o of_o the_o people_n stir_v up_o dissension_n to_o disturb_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o any_o point_n of_o doctrine_n or_o of_o discipline_n or_o of_o the_o form_n of_o catechism_n the_o administration_n of_o sacrament_n or_o of_o public_a prayer_n and_o the_o order_n of_o marriage_n and_o that_o hereto_o particular_a admonition_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a remedy_n the_o consistory_n of_o the_o place_n shall_v endeavour_v with_o speed_n to_o dissolve_v and_o appease_v the_o whole_a matter_n without_o noise_n and_o with_o all_o mildness_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o if_o the_o opposer_n will_v not_o acquiesce_v the_o consistory_n of_o the_o place_n shall_v desire_v the_o colloque_n to_o assemble_v in_o time_n and_o place_n more_o convenient_a have_v first_o of_o all_o make_v the_o say_a opposer_n express_o promise_v which_o shall_v be_v register_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o spread_v abroad_o their_o opinion_n in_o any_o sort_n or_o manner_n whatever_o until_o the_o convocate_a of_o the_o colloque_n under_o pain_n of_o be_v censure_v as_o schismatic_n yet_o they_o may_v have_v liberty_n to_o
confer_v with_o the_o minister_n and_o elder_n if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v sufficient_o instruct_v and_o in_o case_n the_o gainsay_n brethren_n refuse_v to_o make_v the_o say_a promise_n they_o shall_v be_v censure_v as_o rebel_n according_a to_o the_o discipline_n and_o the_o colloque_n be_v assemble_v shall_v proceed_v as_o above_o and_o if_o the_o say_a opposer_n have_v be_v patient_o hear_v and_o refute_v by_o consent_n the_o whole_a shall_v be_v register_v if_o not_o the_o provincial_a synod_n shall_v be_v desire_v to_o meet_v extraordinary_o if_o need_v require_v at_o the_o time_n and_o place_n that_o the_o say_a colloque_n shall_v judge_v most_o convenient_a after_o the_o promise_n as_o abovementioned_a reiterated_a by_o the_o say_a opposer_n the_o synod_n assemble_v shall_v first_o of_o all_o consider_v with_o good_a deliberation_n and_o consideration_n of_o the_o matter_n the_o place_n the_o time_n and_o person_n whether_o it_o shall_v be_v expedient_a that_o the_o conference_n with_o the_o say_a opposer_n be_v make_v in_o presence_n of_o the_o people_n the_o door_n shut_v or_o open_a and_o that_o audience_n be_v give_v to_o any_o of_o the_o party_n present_a that_o will_v speak_v or_o not_o and_o that_o in_o all_o case_n the_o decision_n shall_v belong_v to_o other_o than_o to_o those_o call_v in_o the_o province_n and_o the_o whole_a according_a to_o the_o order_n contain_v in_o the_o discipline_n and_o that_o then_o if_o the_o say_v gainsayers_a will_v not_o obey_v they_o shall_v make_v the_o same_o promise_v as_o above_o and_o shall_v be_v transmit_v over_o to_o the_o national_a synod_n ordinary_o or_o if_o necessity_n require_v extraordinary_o assemble_v the_o which_o shall_v hear_v they_o with_o all_o holy_a liberty_n and_o there_o the_o entire_a and_o final_a resolution_n shall_v be_v make_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o which_o if_o they_o refuse_v to_o acquiesce_v from_o point_n to_o point_v and_o with_o express_a dislike_n of_o their_o error_n register_v they_o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o the_o church_n conformity_n this_o article_n shall_v be_v explain_v in_o what_o i_o shall_v observe_v on_o that_o which_o follow_v xxxii_o a_o pastor_n or_o elder_n break_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n or_o stir_v up_o contention_n about_o some_o point_n of_o doctrine_n or_o of_o discipline_n which_o he_o have_v subscribe_v or_o of_o the_o form_n of_o catechism_n or_o administer_a the_o sacrament_n or_o public_a prayer_n or_o marriage_n refuse_v to_o obey_v what_o the_o colloque_n have_v determine_v shall_v then_o be_v suspend_v from_o his_o office_n to_o be_v far_o proceed_v against_o at_o the_o provincial_n or_o national_a synod_n conformity_n a_o council_n of_o africa_n edit_fw-la ep._n 71._o p._n 121._o ult_n edit_fw-la in_o the_o time_n of_o st._n cyprian_n depose_v those_o of_o the_o clergy_n which_o by_o their_o rebellion_n disturb_v the_o concord_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n st._n basil_n in_o his_o one_a canon_n of_o his_o one_a canonical_a epistle_n to_o amphilochius_n prescribe_v after_o what_o manner_n one_o shall_v act_v not_o only_o against_o true_a schismatic_n but_o likewise_o against_o all_o those_o which_o stir_v up_o division_n in_o the_o church_n and_o which_o also_o make_v conventicle_n and_o assembly_n apart_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o same_o place_n of_o heretic_n and_o as_o these_o be_v three_o sort_n of_o person_n very_o different_a one_o from_o another_o this_o doctor_n do_v also_o adjudge_v diversity_n of_o punishment_n but_o beside_o what_o i_o have_v now_o remark_v we_o have_v also_o several_a canon_n of_o ancient_a council_n which_o do_v favour_v the_o order_n of_o our_o discipline_n the_o 6_o of_o the_o one_a universal_a council_n of_o constantinople_n be_v against_o those_o which_o endeavour_n to_o confound_v and_o overthrow_v the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n the_o vii_o first_o of_o the_o one_a of_o ephesus_n which_o be_v the_o 3d_o ecumenical_a be_v compose_v against_o all_o such_o of_o the_o clergy_n as_o well_o as_o people_n which_o shall_v depart_v from_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n and_o that_o shall_v adhere_v to_o revolt_n or_o apostatise_v the_o 18_o of_o chalcedon_n forbid_v all_o sort_n of_o fraternity_n and_o combination_n against_o the_o church_n observe_v that_o see_v this_o crime_n be_v forbid_v by_o the_o civil_a law_n that_o it_o ought_v much_o more_o to_o be_v defend_v in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v for_o this_o cause_n ought_v to_o be_v cite_v the_o 21_o canon_n of_o the_o 3d_o council_n of_o orleans_n in_o the_o year_n 538._o 480._o tom._n 1._o conc_fw-fr gal._n p._n 254._o ib._n p._n 480._o and_o the_o second_o decree_n make_v by_o the_o synod_n of_o rheims_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 630._o xxxiii_o in_o each_o church_n there_o shall_v memorial_n be_v make_v of_o all_o remarkable_a thing_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o a_o minister_n shall_v be_v depute_v to_o each_o colloque_n to_o receive_v and_o carry_v they_o to_o the_o provincial_n and_o from_o thence_o to_o the_o national_a synod_n conformity_n pope_n fabian_n who_o finish_v his_o day_n by_o a_o glorious_a martyrdom_n for_o the_o cause_n of_o jesus_n christ_n during_o the_o persecution_n of_o decius_n about_o the_o year_n of_o christ_n 250._o pope_n fabian_n 113●_n tom._n 1._o co●il_n p._n 113●_n i_o say_v establish_v person_n to_o collect_v the_o act_n of_o martyr_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o pontifical_a book_n common_o attribute_v to_o damasus_n and_o it_o may_v true_o be_v say_v this_o be_v the_o principal_a subject_n our_o discipline_n aim_v at_o in_o the_o article_n which_o we_o examine_v as_o appear_v by_o this_o establishment_n of_o the_o national_a synod_n of_o privas_n in_o the_o year_n 1612._o the_o province_n shall_v be_v exhort_v careful_o to_o recollect_v the_o history_n of_o pastor_n and_o other_o believer_n which_o in_o these_o last_o time_n have_v suffer_v for_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o such_o memoir_n shall_v be_v send_v to_o geneva_n to_o be_v make_v public_a in_o the_o same_o pontifical_a of_o damasus_n 30._o ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la p._n 30._o which_o i_o but_o now_o speak_v of_o it_o be_v observe_v that_o st._n clement_n disciple_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v a_o long_a time_n before_o fabian_n divide_v the_o seven_o quarter_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n to_o seven_o faithful_a person_n of_o the_o church_n that_o each_o may_v exact_o inquire_v in_o his_o district_n the_o act_n of_o martyr_n in_o the_o number_n of_o which_o he_o be_v put_v himself_o 110._o ib._n p._n 110._o about_o the_o year_n our_o lord_n 100_o pope_n anterus_n predecessor_n to_o fabian_n do_v near-hand_o the_o same_o as_o be_v do_v by_o clement_n but_o if_o that_o be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v also_o practise_v in_o divers_a other_o st._n cyprian_n testify_v it_o be_v practise_v by_o that_o of_o africa_n in_o his_o 37th_o epistle_n where_o he_o ordain_v that_o the_o day_n of_o the_o death_n of_o martyr_n shall_v be_v take_v account_n of_o to_o the_o end_n to_o celebrate_v their_o memory_n it_o be_v in_o this_o regard_n tertullian_n speak_v 13._o de_fw-fr coron_n c._n 13._o des_fw-fr fast_n of_o the_o feast_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o church_n of_o smyrna_n touch_v the_o martyrdom_n of_o st._n pollycarp_n give_v we_o also_o a_o proof_n of_o the_o thing_n now_o in_o question_n and_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o the_o original_a of_o what_o we_o call_v martyrology_n which_o comprehend_v not_o the_o martyr_n of_o one_o church_n only_o but_o general_o of_o all_o as_o can_v be_v discover_v in_o which_o it_o be_v think_v eusebius_n first_o labour_v chap._n vi_o of_o the_o union_n of_o church_n article_n i._n no_o church_n can_v pretend_v precedency_n nor_o domination_n over_o another_o nor_o one_o province_n over_o another_o conformity_n let_v the_o reader_n see_v what_o i_o have_v say_v already_o on_o the_o sixteen_o and_o eighteen_o article_n of_o the_o first_o chap._n where_o he_o will_v find_v this_o article_n establish_v and_o its_o conformity_n to_o the_o ancient_a cannon_n ii_o no_o church_n can_v transact_v any_o matter_n of_o great_a consequence_n wherein_o the_o interest_n or_o damage_n of_o other_o church_n may_v be_v concern_v without_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o provincial_a synod_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o assemble_v it_o and_o if_o the_o matter_n be_v press_v it_o shall_v communicate_v and_o have_v the_o advice_n of_o the_o other_o church_n of_o the_o province_n at_o least_o by_o letter_n conformity_n this_o second_o article_n be_v also_o very_o conformable_a to_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n according_a to_o which_o the_o affair_n of_o each_o province_n be_v administer_v by_o the_o provincial_a synod_n it_o be_v partly_o the_o subject_a of_o the_o second_o cannon_n of_o the_o first_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o constantinople_n
before_o as_o appear_v by_o his_o 55_o letter_n theodoret_n speak_v the_o same_o in_o his_o 86_o epistle_n in_o the_o three_o volume_n of_o his_o work_n and_o it_o be_v on_o this_o practice_n the_o eastern_a bishop_n ground_v their_o complaint_n in_o the_o iv_o century_n against_o pope_n julius_n i._o in_o that_o he_o have_v receive_v st._n athanasius_n into_o his_o communion_n and_o some_o other_o who_o they_o have_v excommunicate_v read_v what_o be_v relate_v by_o zozoman_n in_o the_o viii_o chapter_n of_o the_o three_o book_n of_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n socrates_n ii_o book_n chap._n 15._o and_o julius_n his_o answer_n in_o st._n athanasius_n his_o second_o apology_n to_o be_v persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n hereof_o for_o the_o letter_n write_v by_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n to_o julius_n be_v not_o now_o extant_a that_o at_o present_a find_v in_o the_o first_o volume_n of_o the_o council_n be_v forge_v and_o contain_v but_o a_o collection_n ill_o put_v together_o of_o what_o the_o author_n i_o but_o now_o mention_v have_v write_v it_o be_v true_a our_o discipline_n do_v except_o some_o case_n of_o which_o one_o may_v appeal_v to_o the_o national_a synod_n after_o judgement_n give_v by_o provincial_a synod_n but_o it_o be_v even_o therein_o appear_v its_o conformity_n with_o the_o ancient_n provide_v the_o time_n be_v careful_o distinguish_v before_o the_o christian_a world_n which_o be_v bound_v in_o the_o roman_a empire_n have_v be_v divide_v after_o the_o example_n of_o the_o empire_n into_o several_a ecclesiastical_a diocese_n each_o of_o which_o comprehend_v several_a province_n the_o whole_a extent_n of_o a_o bishop_n jurisdiction_n how_o great_a soever_o it_o be_v make_v but_o one_o ecclesiastical_a province_n for_o example_n in_o st._n cyprian_n time_n all_o africa_n make_v no_o more_o but_o the_o ecclesiastical_a province_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n and_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a libya_n and_o pentapolis_n make_v up_o that_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o than_o it_o be_v requisite_a affair_n shall_v be_v determine_v in_o the_o provincial_a synod_n without_o be_v permit_v to_o appeal_v to_o the_o synod_n of_o any_o other_o province_n it_o be_v what_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o six_o cannon_n of_o nice_a which_o confirm_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n what_o custom_n have_v give_v he_o possession_n of_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o metropolitical_a right_n only_a although_o the_o patriarchal_a right_n also_o may_v be_v infer_v from_o the_o same_o cannon_n by_o lawful_a consequence_n when_o he_o shall_v be_v in_o a_o state_n to_o exercise_v they_o that_o be_v to_o say_v when_o his_o province_n shall_v be_v divide_v into_o several_a ecclesiastical_a province_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v have_v under_o he_o several_a metropolitan_o over_o which_o the_o chief_a of_o the_o diocese_n and_o the_o patriarch_n have_v the_o same_o power_n as_o metropolitan_n have_v over_o the_o bishop●_n of_o their_o brovince_n but_o after_o this_o division_n into_o diocese_n and_o of_o diocese_n into_o several_a feclesiastical_a province_n each_o of_o which_o have_v a_o metropolitan_a have_v be_v make_v which_o the_o first_o universal_a council_n of_o constantinople_n begin_v to_o establish_v or_o it_o may_v be_v but_o to_o one_o muso●●●s_n in_o the_o council_n of_o rimini_n as_o st._n jerom_n testify_v in_o his_o dialogue_n against_o the_o luciferian_o chap._n 7._o where_o he_o observe_v this_o musonius_n be_v of_o the_o byzantine_n province_n but_o instead_o of_o byzantine_n it_o shall_v be_v byzancene_n which_o be_v a_o province_n of_o africa_n wherein_o be_v the_o diocese_n of_o this_o prelate_n as_o for_o the_o care_n the_o precedent_n or_o moderator_n of_o the_o synod_n shall_v take_v to_o the_o end_n all_o thing_n shall_v be_v do_v in_o the_o assembly_n regular_o and_o in_o order_n the_o xi_o council_n of_o toledo_n in_o the_o year_n 675_o ordain_v in_o the_o first_o cannon_n 820._o tom._n 4._o conc._n p._n 820._o the_o same_o observation_n which_o the_o author_n of_o our_o discipline_n here_o prescribe_v not_o forget_v those_o which_o derogate_a from_o the_o law_n viii_o elder_n which_o be_v deputy_n of_o church_n shall_v have_v vote_n as_o minister_n and_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o place_n where_o the_o synod_n be_v assemble_v may_v also_o be_v present_a and_o propose_v any_o thing_n in_o their_o order_n nevertheless_o but_o two_o of_o they_o shall_v have_v vote_n to_o avoid_v confusion_n conformity_n after_o what_o i_o have_v write_v on_o the_o first_o article_n of_o the_o three_o chapter_n there_o be_v no_o difficulty_n in_o understanding_n of_o this_o for_o the_o deacon_n hillary_n have_v assure_v we_o nothing_o be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n without_o the_o counsel_n and_o advice_n of_o the_o elder_n and_o firmi●lian_a bishop_n of_o cappadocia_n that_o the_o prelate_n and_o elder_n assemble_v once_o every_o year_n to_o order_n matter_n commit_v to_o their_o care_n and_o with_o common_a consent_n to_o treat_v of_o the_o great_a and_o most_o important_a affair_n ix_o what_o shall_v be_v conclude_v upon_o by_o provincial_a synod_n for_o order_v the_o church_n of_o their_o province_n shall_v be_v communicate_v to_o the_o national_a synod_n conformity_n the_o 95th_o cannon_n of_o the_o code_n of_o africa_n have_v a_o constitution_n much_o like_o this_o for_o it_o ordain_v that_o private_a affair_n shall_v be_v determine_v in_o the_o province_n but_o as_o for_o the_o common_a and_o general_a they_o refer_v the_o knowledge_n and_o decision_n of_o it_o to_o the_o general_n council_n of_o africa_n now_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o what_o regard_v all_o the_o church_n of_o a_o province_n aught_o to_o be_v put_v in_o the_o rank_n of_o general_n affair_n the_o decision_n whereof_o appertain_v to_o a_o national_a synod_n x._o because_o several_a person_n to_o the_o end_n to_o decline_v or_o delay_v the_o censure_n of_o their_o fault_n appeal_v from_o one_o ecclesiastical_a assembly_n to_o another_o even_o to_o a_o national_a synod_n which_o by_o this_o mean_n be_v more_o perplex_a in_o clear_v their_o case_n than_o any_o other_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v all_o difference_n within_o the_o same_o province_n shall_v be_v definitive_o judge_v without_o appeal_n to_o the_o provincial_a synod_n of_o the_o province_n except_o what_o shall_v concern_v the_o suspending_a and_o depose_v as_o well_o of_o pastor_n as_o of_o elder_n and_o deacon_n and_o the_o change_n of_o pastor_n from_o one_o province_n to_o another_o also_o the_o change_n of_o a_o church_n from_o one_o colloque_n to_o another_o and_o also_o that_o which_o concern_v doctrine_n the_o sacrament_n and_o the_o whole_a discipline_n all_o which_o case_n may_v gradual_o move_v even_o to_o the_o nationall_n synod_n to_o receive_v the_o last_o and_o definitive_a judgement_n conformity_n to_o authorize_v what_o custom_n have_v do_v in_o several_a country_n since_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a at_o least_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v so_o infer_v from_o the_o cannon_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o antioch_n in_o the_o year_n 341_o forty_o year_n before_o that_o of_o constantinople_n afterward_o i_o say_v it_o be_v certain_a appeal_n be_v make_v from_o judgement_n of_o provincial_a synod_n to_o council_n of_o the_o whole_a diocese_n for_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o head_n contain_v in_o our_o discipline_n as_o be_v verify_v by_o most_o of_o the_o cannon_n i_o have_v but_o now_o cite_v particular_o by_o those_o of_o constantinople_n of_o calcedonia_n and_o of_o the_o african_a code_n with_o the_o 95th_o of_o the_o same_o code_n to_o which_o may_v be_v join_v the_o three_o cannon_n of_o the_o four_o council_n of_o toledo_n assemble_v in_o the_o year_n 633._o to._n 4._o conc._n pag._n 582._o xi_o if_o there_o shall_v happen_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o two_o provincial_a synod_n they_o must_v pitch_v on_o a_o three_o to_o reconcile_v they_o conformity_n this_o establishment_n do_v disagree_v with_o the_o 14_o cannon_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o antioch_n which_o be_v conceive_v in_o these_o term_n if_o after_o judgement_n be_v give_v against_o a_o bishop_n accuse_v of_o certain_a crime_n it_o so_o fall_v out_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n be_v upon_o this_o score_n in_o different_a mind_n some_o declare_v he_o innocent_a and_o other_o guilty_a the_o synod_n to_o put_v a_o end_n to_o their_o contest_v be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o metropolitan_a shall_v call_v other_o judge_n of_o the_o next_o province_n to_o decide_v the_o difference_n and_o that_o he_o confirm_v what_o they_o shall_v have_v conclude_v upon_o with_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n it_o be_v true_a this_o cannon_n do_v speak_v of_o difference_n which_o two_o provincial_a synod_n may_v have_v together_o but_o see_v the_o council_n allow_v to_o call_v neighbour_a bishop_n when_o those_o of_o the_o province_n be_v at_o variance_n about_o a_o
fast_n a_o order_n which_o we_o exact_o follow_v and_o which_o be_v ground_v in_o that_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o his_o apostle_n have_v not_o prescribe_v in_o any_o place_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n on_o what_o day_n one_o shall_v or_o shall_v not_o fast_o as_o st._n austin_n have_v observe_v in_o his_o 86_o epistle_n to_o casulanus_fw-la iv_o those_o church_n which_o have_v be_v accustom_a to_o make_v public_a prayer_n on_o certain_a day_n may_v keep_v the_o order_n they_o have_v for_o a_o long_a time_n happy_o use_v and_o other_o may_v conform_v thereunto_o according_a to_o the_o mean_n which_o god_n shall_v please_v hereafter_o to_o give_v they_o and_o as_o their_o edification_n shall_v require_v conformity_n this_o article_n have_v no_o other_o scope_n but_o to_o establish_v a_o entire_a conformity_n in_o the_o church_n as_o to_o what_o regard_v the_o exercise_n of_o piety_n and_o religion_n 199._o can_v 27._o tom._n 1._o conc_fw-fr gal._n p._n 199._o near_o hand_n as_o when_o the_o council_n of_o epaume_n in_o the_o year_n 517._o ordain_v that_o in_o the_o out_o province_n for_o celebration_n of_o divine_a office_n the_o same_o order_n shall_v be_v observe_v as_o be_v by_o the_o metropolitan_a the_o same_o thing_n be_v conclude_v the_o same_o year_n in_o spain_n in_o the_o 1_o council_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o gironda_n 55._o can_v 55._o to._n 3._o conc_fw-fr pag._n 806_o and_o anno_fw-la 633_o in_o the_o 2_o cannon_n of_o the_o 4_o of_o toledo_n to._n 4._o conc_fw-fr pag._n 582._o and_o in_o the_o year_n 465_o a_o council_n of_o vannes_n have_v appoint_v that_o throughout_o the_o whole_a province_n the_o same_o order_n and_o rule_n for_o divine_a office_n and_o for_o sing_v of_o psalm_n shall_v be_v observe_v v._o there_o shall_v no_o prayer_n or_o sermon_n nor_o public_a alm_n be_v give_v at_o burial_n to_o shun_v superstition_n and_o those_o which_o accompany_v the_o corpse_n shall_v be_v exhort_v to_o behave_v themselves_o with_o modesty_n during_o the_o time_n meditate_v according_a to_o the_o object_n before_o their_o eye_n as_o well_o the_o misery_n and_o shortness_n of_o this_o life_n as_o the_o happiness_n of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v conformity_n all_o pretence_n towards_o superstition_n whereunto_o man_n be_v too_o apt_a to_o incline_v be_v in_o this_o article_n endeavour_v to_o be_v avoid_v vi_o because_o mourn_a do_v it_o consist_v in_o apparel_n but_o in_o the_o heart_n believer_n shall_v be_v warn_v to_o demean_v they_o therein_o with_o all_o modesty_n reject_v all_o ambition_n hypocrisy_n vanity_n and_o superstition_n conformity_n this_o last_o article_n prescribe_v modesty_n and_o exclude_v hycoprisie_n and_o ambition_n which_o be_v generous_o oppose_v by_o the_o primitive_a christian_n chap._n xi_o of_o baptism_n article_n i._n baptism_n administer_v by_o one_o that_o have_v no_o vocation_n be_v absolute_o void_a conformity_n the_o author_n of_o apostolical_a constitution_n content_v not_o himself_o to_o forbid_v woman_n to_o baptise_v he_o also_o prohibit_v all_o lay_v person_n because_o they_o be_v not_o call_v to_o it_o in_o effect_n have_v employ_v the_o nine_o chapter_n of_o the_o three_o book_n to_o show_v that_o woman_n shall_v not_o baptise_v he_o thus_o begin_v the_o ten_o neither_o do_v we_o suffer_v a_o lay_v person_n to_o exercise_n any_o priestly_a function_n as_o to_o offer_v sacrifice_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o celebrate_v the_o sacrament_n or_o to_o baptise_v or_o impose_v hand_n or_o to_o give_v the_o benediction_n whether_o more_a or_o less_o for_o none_o take_v to_o he_o this_o honour_n but_o he_o enjoy_v it_o which_o be_v call_v of_o god_n st._n basil_n be_v of_o no_o other_o mind_n as_o the_o jesuit_n petau_n confess_v in_o his_o note_n upon_o st._n epiphanius_n where_o he_o say_v st._n basil_n seem_v to_o have_v believe_v that_o baptism_n confer_v by_o lay_v person_n be_v null_a and_o to_o speak_v the_o truth_n this_o holy_a doctor_n speak_v of_o the_o opinion_n of_o st._n cyprian_n of_o firmilian_a 351._o pag._n 351._o and_o other_o which_o teach_v that_o all_o those_o aught_o to_o be_v re-baptised_a which_o have_v be_v baptise_v by_o heretic_n he_o say_v 21._o epist_n ad_fw-la ampluit_fw-la can_v 1._o to._n 3._o p._n 21._o that_o they_o have_v appoint_v they_o shall_v be_v purisied_a anew_o by_o the_o true_a baptism_n of_o the_o church_n no_o more_o nor_o less_o than_o if_o they_o have_v be_v baptise_v by_o lay_n person_n st._n basil_n will_v not_o have_v speak_v after_o this_o manner_n have_v he_o not_o be_v persuade_v that_o baptism_n administer_v by_o lay_v man_n be_v not_o true_a baptism_n as_o for_o baptism_n administer_v by_o a_o woman_n 231._o cap._n 17._o p._n 231._o tertullian_n have_v before_o condemn_v it_o in_o his_o time_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o baptism_n and_o have_v show_v that_o they_o be_v not_o permit_v to_o teach_v nor_o to_o baptise_v st._n epiphanius_n in_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o collyridians_n which_o be_v the_o 79_o in_o order_n enlarge_v much_o in_o prove_v the_o same_o thing_n to_o stop_v the_o rashness_n of_o woman_n who_o will_v undertake_v to_o baptise_v 1060._o pag._n 1059_o 1060._o observe_v also_o that_o the_o holy_a virgin_n have_v not_o this_o power_n for_o if_o she_o have_v it_o jesus_n christ_n may_v have_v be_v baptise_v by_o she_o rather_o than_o by_o john_n baptist_n the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n make_v this_o decree_n anno_fw-la 398_o that_o a_o woman_n shall_v not_o presume_v to_o baptise_v it_o be_v not_o then_o to_o be_v wonder_v that_o st._n epiphanius_n in_o the_o forty_o two_o heresy_n observe_v as_o a_o thing_n unblamable_a 〈…〉_o tom._n 1._o conc_fw-fr can_v 〈…〉_o that_o the_o arch-heretick_n martion_n permit_v woman_n to_o baptise_v ii_o a_o doctor_n in_o the_o church_n can_v preach_v nor_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n unless_o he_o be_v both_o doctor_n and_o minister_n conformity_n this_o article_n be_v but_o a_o continuance_n of_o the_o former_a for_o see_v a_o doctor_n in_o quality_n of_o a_o mere_a doctor_n have_v no_o vocation_n to_o preach_v the_o word_n nor_o to_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n it_o be_v unquestionable_a the_o baptism_n which_o he_o shall_v confer_v shall_v be_v no_o other_o than_o that_o which_o shall_v be_v administer_v by_o a_o mere_a lay_v man_n to_o do_v it_o lawful_o he_o must_v not_o only_o be_v a_o doctor_n but_o also_o a_o minister_n iii_o a_o jew_n or_o pagan_a of_o what_o age_n soever_o he_o be_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v baptize_v before_o be_v well_o instruct_v in_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o that_o it_o appear_v they_o be_v so_o by_o their_o confession_n conformity_n there_o be_v nothing_o in_o this_o establishment_n but_o what_o be_v practise_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n st._n justin_n martyr_n testify_v in_o his_o second_o or_o rather_o his_o first_o apology_n that_o the_o christian_n of_o those_o time_n will_v not_o baptise_v those_o who_o will_v turn_v to_o their_o communion_n until_o after_o they_o have_v believe_v and_o be_v thorough_o persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o moreover_o promise_v to_o live_v conformable_a to_o the_o holiness_n of_o their_o law_n and_o profession_n pope_n victor_n the_o 1_o ordain_v towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o second_o century_n as_o the_o pontifical_a book_n say_v in_o his_o life_n that_o in_o case_n of_o necessity_n one_o may_v baptise_v all_o those_o that_o turn_v from_o paganism_n to_o christianity_n either_o in_o a_o river_n or_o in_o the_o sea_n or_o in_o a_o fountain_n or_o in_o a_o lake_n upon_o condition_n nevertheless_o that_o in_o the_o first_o place_n they_o shall_v give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o make_v a_o open_a confession_n of_o it_o the_o ten_o book_n of_o recognition_n false_o attribute_v to_o st_n clement_n disciple_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v very_o ancient_a but_o forge_v and_o write_v before_o origen_n who_o live_v in_o the_o three_o century_n in_o the_o vi_o of_o these_o book_n at_o the_o end_n we_o read_v st._n peter_n baptize_v near_o the_o sea_n those_o which_o have_v full_o receive_v the_o faith_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n that_o be_v to_o say_v those_o which_o believe_v in_o he_o and_o which_o have_v be_v instruct_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o his_o gospel_n st._n jerom_n expound_v these_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o his_o apostle_n 28.19_o math._n 28.19_o go_v teach_v all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n st._n jerom_n observe_v 66._o in_o cap._n 28._o mat._n tom._n 6._o pag._n 66._o the_o apostle_n teach_v they_o first_o and_o that_o after_o have_v instruct_v they_o they_o baptize_v they_o with_o water_n for_o say_v he_o it_o can_v be_v that_o the_o body_n shall_v receive_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n unless_o the_o soul_n have_v first_o receive_v
husband_n it_o be_v also_o the_o opinion_n of_o innocent_a i._n ep._n 9_o theodore_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n who_o i_o cite_v on_o the_o 29_o article_n 62._o can._n 113.4_o q._n spicil_n p._n 62._o suffer_v a_o lay_n man_n who_o wife_n have_v absent_v to_o marry_v another_o at_o the_o expiration_n of_o seven_o year_n with_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o at_o the_o end_n of_o one_o year_n if_o she_o have_v be_v take_v away_o captive_a by_o force_n the_o 83_o caunon_n of_o the_o 6_o universal_a council_n 347._o tom._n 5._o conc_fw-fr pag._n 347._o follow_v near_o hand_n the_o discipline_n of_o st._n basil_n and_o partly_o that_o of_o leo_n the_o first_o the_o 9th_o of_o that_o of_o verbery_n which_o i_o have_v mention_v several_a time_n suffer_v a_o man_n who_o be_v force_v to_o change_v country_n and_o who_o wife_n will_v not_o follow_v he_o it_o suffer_v he_o to_o marry_v another_o if_o he_o can_v contain_v tom._n 2._o conc._n gall._n pag._n 3._o photius_n in_o the_o 13_o title_n can._n 2._o of_o his_o nomocanon_n declare_v the_o time_n and_o the_o manner_n that_o the_o wife_n of_o the_o absent_a husband_n be_v to_o observe_v before_o she_o re-marries_a the_o friar_n blastares_n follow_v the_o step_n of_o photius_n and_o when_o the_o absence_n of_o the_o husband_n or_o the_o wife_n be_v cause_v by_o captivity_n he_o determin_n that_o if_o in_o five_o year_n no_o news_n be_v hear_v the_o marriage_n be_v void_a xxxii_o as_o for_o the_o wife_n of_o priest_n and_o friar_n which_o revolt_n and_o return_v to_o idolatry_n sing_v mass_n or_o return_v to_o their_o cloister_n from_o whence_o they_o come_v out_o before_o they_o be_v advertise_v to_o inhabit_v no_o long_o with_o their_o say_a husband_n during_o their_o apostasy_n not_o to_o load_v marriage_n with_o blame_n and_o ignominy_n and_o also_o shall_v not_o marry_v with_o other_o until_o the_o first_o marriage_n be_v dissolve_v by_o the_o magistrate_n conformity_n to_o this_o article_n may_v be_v refer_v the_o 44_o cannon_n of_o the_o 2d_o canonical_a epistle_n of_o st._n basil_n with_o the_o interpretation_n of_o balsamon_n and_o zonaras_n the_o 13_o cannon_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o orleans_n of_o the_o year_n 511._o and_o the_o 3d._n of_o that_o of_o verbery_n assemble_v anno_fw-la 752._o for_o in_o all_o these_o place_n 2._o tom._n 1._o conc_fw-fr gall._n pag._n 150._o &_o tom._n 2._o pag._n 2._o something_o be_v ordain_v which_o come_v very_o nigh_o the_o establishment_n of_o our_o discipline_n chap._n fourteen_o of_o particular_a rule_n and_o advertisement_n article_n i._n no_o body_n shall_v be_v receive_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n until_o he_o have_v first_o public_o renounce_v all_o superstition_n and_o idolatry_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o the_o mass_n especial_o conformity_n the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n have_v refuse_v to_o receive_v person_n into_o her_o communion_n until_o they_o have_v first_o give_v a_o account_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o have_v renounce_v all_o error_n they_o have_v former_o profess_v and_o all_o the_o false_a worship_n they_o have_v before_o preach_v i_o may_v prove_v this_o truth_n by_o sundry_a cannon_n but_o i_o will_v only_o produce_v some_o the_o thing_n be_v clear_a of_o itself_o the_o six_o cannon_n of_o laodicea_n be_v express_v on_o this_o subject_a heretic_n must_v not_o be_v permit_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o house_n of_o god_n if_o they_o persevere_v in_o their_o heresy_n the_o seven_o be_v no_o less_o formal_a those_o among_o the_o novatian_o photinian_o or_o quarto_fw-la decimans_fw-la nor_o those_o among_o they_o they_o call_v believer_n until_o they_o first_o anathematise_v all_o heresy_n especial_o that_o wherein_o they_o be_v detain_v to_o this_o same_o subject_a may_v be_v apply_v the_o 37th_o and_o 58th_o cannon_n of_o the_o same_o synod_n about_o forty_o year_n before_o the_o great_a council_n of_o nice_a have_v order_v in_o the_o viii_o cannon_n touch_v the_o catharian_o that_o when_o they_o return_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n they_o shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o declare_v by_o writing_n that_o they_o embrace_v all_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n and_o that_o by_o consequence_n they_o renounce_v all_o the_o error_n contrary_a to_o they_o and_o wherewith_o they_o have_v be_v infect_v and_o because_o all_o error_n be_v not_o alike_o dangerous_a the_o second_o ecumenical_a council_n assemble_v at_o constantinople_n in_o the_o year_n 381_o prescribe_v in_o the_o seven_o cannon_n the_o manner_n of_o receive_v those_o which_o turn_v to_o the_o church_n and_o this_o method_n be_v different_a according_a to_o the_o diversity_n of_o error_n of_o those_o which_o be_v convert_v but_o after_o all_o the_o least_o that_o be_v expect_v of_o they_o be_v to_o anathematise_v by_o write_v all_o manner_n of_o heresy_n as_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o dogma_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_n and_o apostolic_a church_n ii_o a_o believer_n be_v not_o permit_v to_o intermeddle_v in_o any_o thing_n wherein_o there_o may_v be_v a_o intermixture_n of_o idolatry_n as_o that_o which_o be_v call_v the_o kiss_n of_o the_o hand_n or_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o church_n keep_v mass_n vigil_n and_o maintain_v friar_n which_o be_v appoint_v for_o that_o purpose_n but_o to_o hold_v priory_n revenue_n rent_n chappellany_n and_o tithe_n to_o pay_v the_o revenue_n to_o churchman_n inasmuch_o as_o they_o be_v temporal_a lord_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n indifferent_a and_o at_o the_o liberty_n of_o those_o that_o please_v to_o do_v it_o nevertheless_o believer_n be_v advertise_v not_o to_o intermeddle_v in_o those_o matter_n if_o they_o find_v any_o abuse_n therein_o or_o appearance_n of_o any_o ill_a consequence_n whereof_o the_o consistory_n shall_v take_v special_a heed_n conformity_n it_o be_v only_o requisite_a to_o read_v what_o i_o have_v say_v on_o the_o nineteenth_o article_n of_o the_o five_o chap._n which_o be_v that_o of_o consistory_n to_o see_v after_o what_o manner_n those_o be_v treat_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n as_o be_v any_o way_n pollute_v with_o idolatry_n i_o will_v here_o only_o add_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o the_o ancient_a father_n call_v idolatry_n crimen_fw-la principale_n summum_fw-la scelus_fw-la principale_v crimen_fw-la genneris_fw-la humani_fw-la summum_fw-la saeculi_fw-la reatus_fw-la tota_fw-la causa_fw-la judicii_fw-la and_o by_o these_o expression_n they_o will_v let_v christian_n see_v how_o much_o they_o shall_v abhor_v idolatry_n see_v it_o break_v all_o manner_n of_o communion_n with_o god_n second_o that_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n after_o have_v declare_v in_o the_o 35th_o cannon_n that_o christian_n shall_v not_o forsake_v the_o church_n of_o god_n to_o follow_v angel_n to_o invoke_v they_o it_o make_v this_o menace_n if_o any_o one_o be_v find_v to_o serve_v this_o hide_a idolatry_n let_v he_o be_v anathematise_v because_o he_o have_v forsake_v our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o be_v turn_v to_o idolatry_n the_o reader_n may_v observe_v if_o he_o please_v that_o the_o father_n of_o laodicea_n think_v one_o abandon_v jesus_n christ_n and_o for_o sake_n he_o at_o the_o very_a instant_a one_o make_v any_o step_n towards_o idolatry_n and_o it_o will_v be_v to_o no_o purpose_n to_o say_v that_o one_o often_o think_v there_o be_v idolatry_n where_o there_o be_v none_o because_o that_o as_o soon_o as_o ever_o a_o man_n think_v there_o be_v idolatry_n he_o ought_v not_o be_v concern_v more_o nor_o less_o although_o he_o may_v be_v mistake_v in_o his_o judgement_n for_o he_o will_v betray_v his_o own_o conscience_n and_o endanger_v his_o salvation_n see_v that_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n all_o that_o be_v do_v without_o faith_n be_v sin_n as_o st._n paul_n say_v iii_o those_o who_o by_o unlawful_a mean_n as_o by_o pope_n bull_n or_o for_o money_n shall_v hold_v benefice_n and_o also_o those_o which_o shall_v uphold_v idolatry_n direct_o or_o indirect_o be_v declare_v unworthy_a to_o be_v admit_v to_o the_o holy_a communion_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n as_o for_o benefice_n confer_v on_o any_o body_n by_o right_a of_o patronage_n whether_o it_o be_v by_o provision_n of_o the_o lord_n lay_v patron_n or_o by_o collation_n of_o the_o bishop_n believer_n be_v advertise_v not_o to_o accept_v of_o any_o that_o shall_v be_v give_v they_o under_o any_o open_a or_o tacit_n condition_n of_o service_n deditate_v to_o the_o idol_n conformity_n this_o article_n be_v a_o consequence_n and_o dependence_n on_o the_o former_a it_o have_v no_o need_n of_o any_o other_o interpretation_n iv_o printer_n bookseller_n painter_n and_o other_o tradesman_n and_o in_o general_a all_o believer_n especial_o those_o who_o have_v any_o office_n in_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v admonish_v not_o to_o make_v any_o thing_n in_o their_o way_n as_o depend_v direct_o on_o the_o
tragedy_n conformity_n this_o respect_n be_v due_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n as_o not_o to_o make_v it_o serve_v for_o subject_a nor_o argument_n to_o these_o piece_n of_o theatre_n which_o the_o ancient_a church_n have_v secure_o condemn_v forbid_v her_o child_n to_o be_v there_o present_a xix_o church_n where_o there_o shall_v be_v printer_n shall_v warn_v they_o not_o to_o print_v book_n that_o shall_v concern_v religion_n or_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n without_o first_o have_v communicate_v they_o to_o the_o consistory_n to_o prevent_v the_o mischief_n that_o have_v arisen_a thereby_o the_o printer_n stationer_n etc._n etc._n shall_v be_v warn_v not_o to_o sell_v any_o book_n relate_v to_o idolatry_n that_o may_v be_v impious_a or_o scandalous_a or_o which_o may_v tend_v to_o the_o corrupt_a of_o good_a manner_n conformity_n after_o what_o i_o have_v observe_v on_o the_o 2_o 3_o and_o 16_o article_n of_o this_o chapter_n this_o do_v not_o require_v any_o new_a interpretation_n xx._n although_o the_o priest_n do_v wrongful_o usurp_v tithe_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o administration_n nevertheless_o they_o ought_v to_o be_v pay_v in_o respect_n to_o the_o king_n command_n and_o to_o avoid_v sedition_n and_o give_v offence_n conformity_n in_o that_o we_o pay_v tithe_n to_o the_o curate_n be_v a_o effect_n of_o the_o obedience_n we_o owe_v to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o our_o king_n and_o a_o mark_n of_o the_o care_n our_o synod_n have_v have_v in_o accommodate_v in_o indifferent_a thing_n with_o those_o from_o who_o we_o have_v separate_v for_o mere_a conscience_n sake_n and_o not_o for_o worldly_a consideration_n nor_o for_o private_a interest_n xxi_o believer_n shall_v be_v exhort_v not_o to_o give_v any_o offence_n in_o work_v on_o fast_a day_n according_a to_o the_o edict_n conformity_n it_o be_v also_o by_o a_o principle_n of_o obedience_n and_o submission_n that_o we_o observe_v holiday_n not_o to_o offend_v our_o neighbour_n and_o to_o keep_v ourselves_o up_o to_o the_o edict_n under_o who_o rule_n we_o live_v xxii_o all_o usury_n shall_v be_v very_o strict_o prohibit_v because_o they_o be_v exorbitant_n and_o many_o abuse_n be_v therein_o commit_v conformity_n the_o ancient_a cannon_n very_o strict_o prohibit_v usury_n because_o it_o be_v cruel_a and_o many_o great_a crime_n be_v therein_o commit_v our_o discipline_n follow_v a_o moderation_n in_o declare_v that_o in_o matter_n of_o lend_v one_o shall_v act_v according_a to_o the_o king_n ordinance_n and_o moreover_o that_o the_o rule_n of_o charity_n be_v consult_v xxiii_o all_o violence_n and_o unbecoming_a language_n against_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o even_o against_o priest_n and_o friar_n shall_v not_o only_o be_v hinder_v but_o also_o whole_o suppress_v as_o much_o as_o possible_a may_v be_v conformity_n this_o article_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o gospel_n which_o put_v in_o the_o number_n of_o murderer_n those_o which_o violate_v their_o neighbour_n by_o injurious_a word_n and_o show_v the_o disposition_n we_o have_v ever_o have_v to_o live_v peaceable_o with_o our_o countryman_n not_o to_o instance_n in_o cannon_n which_o forbid_v all_o manner_n of_o outrage_n xxiv_o swearer_n who_o through_o custom_n or_o anger_n take_v the_o name_n of_o god_n in_o vain_a and_o other_o who_o profane_v the_o majesty_n of_o the_o lord_n shall_v be_v grevous_o censure_v and_o after_o one_o or_o two_o admonition_n if_o they_o desist_v not_o shall_v be_v suspend_v the_o lord_n table_n and_o outrageous_a blasphemer_n as_o also_o damee_n and_o the_o like_a shall_v by_o no_o mean_n be_v tolerate_v in_o the_o church_n but_o from_o the_o first_o offence_n shall_v be_v censure_v even_o to_o suspension_n from_o the_o sacrament_n and_o if_o they_o persist_v they_o shall_v be_v public_o excommunicate_v conformity_n the_o foundation_n of_o this_o article_n be_v take_v from_o the_o three_o commandment_n of_o the_o first_o table_n of_o the_o law_n thou_o shall_v not_o take_v the_o name_n of_o the_o lord_n thy_o god_n in_o vain_a for_o the_o lord_n will_v not_o hold_v he_o guiltless_a that_o take_v his_o name_n in_o vain_a after_o so_o strict_a a_o prohibition_n and_o so_o terrible_a a_o commination_n our_o discipline_n have_v reason_n to_o establish_v punishment_n against_o the_o infringer_n of_o this_o commandment_n to_o avoid_v all_o blame_n and_o reproach_n 548._o l._n 7._o ind._n 2_o epist_n 6._o tom._n 2._o spicil_n pag._n 548._o because_o as_o gregory_n the_o first_o say_v he_o that_o correct_v not_o what_o shall_v be_v take_v away_o do_v commit_v it_o our_o king_n st._n lewis_n make_v a_o ordinance_n in_o the_o year_n 1270_o to_o banish_v out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n blasphemy_n and_o oath_n whereby_o the_o majesty_n of_o god_n be_v crimina_o profane_v xxv_o the_o church_n shall_v advertise_v believer_n both_o man_n and_o woman_n to_o use_v great_a modesty_n especial_o in_o apparel_n and_o shall_v give_v order_n to_o abate_v the_o superfluity_n therein_o commit_v nevertheless_o the_o say_a church_n shall_v make_v no_o law_n thereabouts_o it_o be_v a_o thing_n appertain_v to_o the_o magistrate_n to_o do_v but_o shall_v give_v notice_n to_o all_o that_o the_o king_n ordinance_n in_o those_o case_n shall_v be_v diligent_o observe_v conformity_n the_o remark_n i_o have_v make_v on_o the_o 20_o article_n of_o the_o first_o chapter_n will_v show_v the_o conformity_n of_o this_o with_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o ancient_a christian_n xxvi_o no_o body_n can_v be_v debar_v from_o the_o lord_n table_n for_o wear_v any_o kind_n of_o habit_n that_o shall_v be_v of_o common_a use_n and_o custom_n in_o this_o kingdom_n but_o in_o this_o rank_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v comprehend_v those_o which_o leave_v the_o open_a mark_n of_o shame_n dissoluteness_n too_o much_o newness_n as_o paint_v naked_a breast_n and_o the_o like_a the_o consistory_n shall_v use_v all_o possible_a mean_n to_o suppress_v such_o dissolution_n by_o censure_n and_o against_o obstinate_a person_n shall_v proceed_v to_o suspend_v they_o from_o the_o lord_n table_n conformity_n i_o say_v the_o same_o of_o this_o as_o of_o the_o former_a xxvii_o dance_n shall_v be_v suppress_v and_o those_o who_o make_v account_v to_o dance_v or_o be_v present_a at_o dance_v after_o have_v be_v several_a time_n admonish_v shall_v be_v excommunicate_v when_o they_o shall_v grow_v obstinate_a and_o rebellious_a consistory_n be_v strict_o enjoin_v to_o see_v this_o article_n due_o execute_v and_o to_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v public_o read_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o synod_n and_o the_o colloques_fw-la exhort_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o consistory_n which_o shall_v not_o take_v care_n to_o censure_v they_o conformity_n 53._o can._n 53._o the_o synod_n of_o laodicea_n about_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o four_o century_n make_v a_o cannon_n against_o dance_n contain_v in_o these_o word_n christian_n which_o go_v to_o wedding_n must_v not_o dance_v but_o let_v they_o dine_v or_o sup_v civil_o as_o become_v christian_n in_o the_o three_o volume_n of_o the_o council_n a_o like_a decree_n be_v attribute_v to_o the_o council_n of_o lerrida_fw-la in_o the_o year_n 524._o though_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o same_o of_o that_o of_o laodicea_n a_o little_a vary_v but_o just_a now_o mention_v herald_n bishop_n of_o tours_n in_o his_o capitulary_n of_o the_o year_n 858_o 818._o pag._n 818._o in_o the_o three_o volume_n of_o the_o council_n of_o france_n forbid_v also_o dance_n not_o only_o at_o wedding_n 115._o cap._n 112_o 114._o pag._n 115._o but_o also_o on_o other_o occasion_n the_o friar_n blastares_n have_v not_o in_o his_o collection_n forget_v the_o cannon_n of_o laodicea_n chap._n 7._o of_o the_o letter_n g._n pag._n 66._o st._n eloy_n bishop_n of_o noyon_n in_o the_o seven_o century_n inveigh_v much_o against_o dance_v which_o he_o put_v in_o the_o number_n of_o devilish_a divertisment_n as_o be_v report_v by_o st._n owen_n in_o the_o second_o book_n of_o his_o life_n chap._n 15._o tom._n 5._o spiril_n pag._n 217._o in_o the_o year_n 589_o the_o three_o council_n of_o toledo_n have_v appoint_v in_o the_o 23d_o 507._o tom._n 4._o conc_fw-fr pag._n 507._o cannon_n to_o exterminate_v this_o profane_a and_o irreligious_a custom_n from_o among_o the_o people_n who_o instead_o of_o attend_v diligent_o on_o god_n service_n on_o holiday_n spend_v the_o time_n in_o dance_a and_o sing_v filthy_a and_o impure_a song_n and_o the_o father_n enjoin_v the_o bishop_n and_o judge_n with_o care_n to_o clear_a spain_n from_o this_o extravigance_n and_o about_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o v._o century_n a_o council_n of_o africa_n have_v ordain_v in_o the_o 27_o cannon_n that_o the_o emperor_n shall_v be_v desire_v to_o prohibit_v dance_n in_o the_o street_n on_o day_n appoint_v for_o celebrate_v the_o memory_n of_o martyr_n 915._o tom._n 1._o conc_fw-fr pag._n 915._o in_o the_o 6_o book_n of_o the_o capitulary_n of_o our_o
bien_fw-fr de_fw-fr l'honneur_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr gloire_fw-fr mais_n il_fw-it ne_fw-fr doit_fw-fr pas_fw-fr seul_fw-fr jovir_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr victoire_n ce_fw-fr sage_a &_o just_a anglois_n tout_fw-fr plein_fw-fr de_fw-fr charité_fw-fr fait_z passer_n chez_fw-fr les_fw-fr scion_n ce_fw-fr traitté_fw-fr uéritable_fw-fr il_fw-fr doit_fw-fr donc_fw-fr avoir_fw-fr part_n au_fw-fr laurier_n honourable_a le_fw-fr peré_fw-la en_fw-fr ce_fw-fr partage_n exalte_n l'equité_fw-fr desaguliers_n m._n a_o monsieur_n walker_n sur_fw-fr sa_fw-fr version_n en_fw-fr anglois_fw-fr de_fw-fr la_fw-fr discipline_n des_fw-fr eglise_n reformeé_v the_o france_n qv_v i_o te_fw-mi doit_fw-fr plus_fw-fr des_fw-fr deux_fw-fr l'angleterre_fw-fr oú_fw-it la_fw-it france_n o_fw-fr genereux_fw-fr walker_n tun_n travail_n excellent_a honore_n l'une_fw-fr &_o l'autre_fw-fr &_o donne_fw-fr l'_fw-fr esperence_n d'un_fw-fr amour_n qui_fw-fr du_fw-fr ciel_fw-fr tient_fw-fr son_fw-fr uray_fw-fr fondement_fw-fr j._n d._n m._n conformity_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n of_o the_o protestant_n of_o france_n with_o that_o of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n chap._n i._o of_o minister_n article_n i._n to_o proceed_v to_o the_o election_n of_o those_o which_o be_v to_o be_v employ_v in_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o rule_n of_o the_o apostle_n must_v be_v observe_v that_o examination_n and_o inquiry_n must_v be_v make_v of_o their_o doctrine_n life_n and_o conversation_n and_o that_o as_o diligent_o as_o may_v be_v conformity_n jesus_n christ_n have_v establish_v the_o preach_v of_o the_o gospel_n to_o conduct_v his_o child_n to_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o the_o salvation_n which_o he_o purchase_v for_o they_o by_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o death_n it_o be_v with_o great_a reason_n that_o the_o author_n of_o our_o discipline_n have_v begin_v this_o excellent_a work_n with_o the_o article_n which_o treat_v of_o the_o election_n and_o establish_n of_o minister_n which_o be_v the_o instrument_n which_o god_n employ_v for_o assemble_v the_o saint_n and_o for_o build_v up_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n as_o st._n paul_n speak_v the_o more_o weighty_a this_o office_n be_v the_o more_o care_n ought_v to_o be_v take_v that_o those_o which_o be_v call_v to_o it_o shall_v be_v enrich_v with_o gift_n necessary_a to_o discharge_v themselves_o as_o they_o ought_v that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v apt_a to_o teach_v which_o the_o national_a synod_n of_o gergeau_n add_v in_o the_o year_n 1601._o to_o the_o article_n which_o we_o examine_v after_o these_o word_n of_o their_o doctrine_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n shall_v be_v accompany_v with_o holiness_n of_o life_n to_o the_o end_n that_o if_o they_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n by_o their_o preach_v so_o also_o they_o shall_v be_v the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n by_o their_o good_a live_n the_o apostle_n who_o perfect_o know_v the_o importance_n of_o this_o divine_a employment_n take_v particular_a care_n in_o chap._n 3._o of_o the_o one_a epistle_n to_o timothy_n and_o in_o chap._n 1._o to_o titus_n to_o prescribe_v all_o the_o quality_n he_o desire_v in_o a_o good_a and_o faithful_a minister_n of_o the_o new-testament_n st._n peter_n also_o treat_v of_o they_o but_o in_o a_o more_o general_a manner_n in_o chap._n 5._o of_o his_o one_a epistle_n thence_o it_o be_v that_o st._n clement_n observe_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n 1633._o page_n 54._o edit_fw-la oxford_n 1633._o that_o the_o apostle_n preach_v the_o word_n in_o the_o city_n and_o in_o the_o country_n and_o that_o they_o establish_v for_o bishop_n of_o those_o which_o be_v to_o believe_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o those_o which_o they_o have_v convert_v that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o first_o fruit_n of_o those_o which_o be_v awaken_v at_o their_o preach_v have_v embrace_v the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n but_o he_o observe_v also_o that_o he_o make_v they_o not_o conductor_n of_o the_o faithful_a until_o after_o he_o have_v prove_v they_o by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n tertullian_n in_o all_o likelihood_n think_v of_o this_o practice_n when_o describe_v in_o chap._n 39_o of_o his_o apology_n the_o assembly_n of_o christian_n of_o his_o time_n he_o say_v that_o the_o elder_n which_o have_v be_v try_v preside_v over_o they_o this_o proof_n undoubted_o comprehend_v that_o of_o their_o life_n and_o doctrine_n it_o be_v also_o in_o the_o same_o design_n that_o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n assemble_v in_o the_o year_n 398_o and_o compose_v of_o above_o 200_o bishop_n order_v in_o the_o first_o canon_n before_o all_o thing_n to_o examine_v he_o that_o be_v to_o be_v consecrate_a a_o bishop_n 727._o tom._n 1._o council_n pag._n 727._o to_o see_v if_o he_o have_v a_o good_a natural_a wit_n if_o he_o be_v apt_a to_o teach_v moderate_a in_o his_o conversation_n sober_a in_o his_o life_n diligent_a in_o his_o affair_n humble_a affable_a full_a of_o compassion_n if_o he_o be_v learned_a if_o he_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n if_o he_o interpret_v the_o word_n of_o god_n sober_o and_o prudent_o if_o he_o be_v verse_v in_o the_o dogma_fw-la be_v of_o the_o church_n and_o if_o he_o can_v explain_v in_o a_o clear_a and_o plain_a manner_n the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a also_o make_v mention_n of_o this_o trial_n in_o the_o nine_o and_o ten_o canon_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v show_v on_o the_o four_o article_n the_o exactness_n that_o be_v use_v to_o have_v good_a testimony_n of_o those_o which_o be_v to_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n ii_o those_o which_o be_v new_o introduce_v into_o the_o church_n especial_o priest_n and_o friar_n be_v not_o to_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o ministry_n without_o long_a and_o diligent_a inspection_n and_o examination_n not_o only_o of_o their_o life_n but_o also_o of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o must_v be_v approve_v of_o at_o the_o least_o for_o two_o year_n from_o the_o time_n of_o their_o conversion_n and_o confirm_v by_o good_a witness_n of_o the_o place_n wherein_o they_o have_v live_v and_o they_o shall_v not_o receive_v imposition_n of_o hand_n no_o more_o than_o if_o they_o be_v mere_a stranger_n without_o the_o advice_n of_o provincial_n and_o national_a synod_n conformity_n this_o article_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o authority_n of_o st._n paul_n and_o upon_o reason_n i_o say_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o st._n paul_n who_o declare_v positive_o that_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n shall_v not_o be_v a_o novice_n lest_o be_v lift_v up_o with_o pride_n 3.6_o 1_o tim._n 3.6_o he_o fall_v into_o condemnation_n of_o the_o devil_n i_o say_v in_o the_o second_o place_n on_o reason_n for_o if_o we_o diligent_o examine_v the_o doctrine_n and_o manner_n of_o those_o that_o aspire_v to_o the_o office_n of_o the_o holy_a ministry_n although_o they_o be_v son_n of_o the_o church_n by_o birth_n or_o at_o least_o that_o they_o have_v join_v themselves_o to_o her_o communion_n for_o several_a year_n pass_v of_o much_o great_a reason_n shall_v the_o same_o care_n and_o precaution_n bound_v rather_o more_o in_o regard_n of_o those_o which_o be_v turn_v to_o we_o but_o very_o late_o a_o tree_n new_o plant_v can_v so_o well_o resist_v wind_n and_o storm_n the_o extremity_n of_o cold_a nor_o great_a heat_n as_o if_o it_o have_v take_v deep_a root_n in_o the_o earth_n a_o new_a convert_n have_v not_o so_o much_o light_n or_o experience_n for_o the_o guide_n of_o a_o flock_n beside_o it_o be_v requisite_a time_n shall_v be_v allow_v to_o judge_v of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o his_o conversion_n because_o man_n can_v penetrate_v into_o the_o heart_n and_o that_o moreover_o the_o action_n of_o a_o hypocrite_n have_v in_o outward_a show_n much_o resemblance_n with_o those_o of_o a_o good_a christian_n but_o if_o this_o article_n now_o in_o question_n be_v ground_v on_o the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n 1664._o de_fw-fr presc_n c._n 41._o edit_n paris_n 1664._o and_o on_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n it_o be_v no_o less_o on_o tradition_n tertullian_n reproach_n heretic_n that_o they_o establish_v in_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n neophites_n and_o such_o as_o be_v new_o convert_v the_o great_a council_n of_o nice_a in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 325._o make_v a_o canon_n on_o purpose_n wherein_o the_o father_n complain_v 2._o can._n 2._o that_o several_a thing_n have_v be_v do_v either_o through_o necessity_n or_o otherwise_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a rule_n as_o for_o have_v too_o soon_o grant_v baptism_n to_o those_o which_o pass_v from_o paganism_n to_o christianity_n without_o have_v be_v long_o enough_o catechise_v and_o in_o have_v advance_v they_o to_o the_o high_a office_n in_o the_o church_n present_o after_o baptism_n upon_o which_o they_o prohibit_v that_o the_o like_a shall_v not_o be_v do_v for_o the_o
election_n of_o the_o clergy_n i_o proceed_v on_o far_a and_o i_o say_v the_o same_o practice_n be_v observe_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 13_o century_n therefore_o a_o council_n of_o avignon_n assemble_v the_o year_n 1219._o by_o the_o legate_n of_o pope_n innocent_a the_o 3d_o be_v oblige_v to_o prohibit_v it_o in_o the_o 5_o chapter_n 613._o ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la p._n 613._o we_o forbid_v the_o laity_n to_o intermeddle_v by_o themselves_o or_o any_o else_o in_o the_o election_n of_o a_o bishop_n or_o of_o any_o other_o church_n guide_n and_o in_o all_o likelihood_n the_o council_n make_v this_o decree_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o albigenses_n who_o doubtless_o follow_v the_o ancient_a practice_n and_o with_o who_o the_o legate_n of_o this_o same_o pope_n have_v a_o conference_n in_o the_o city_n of_o mountreall_a near_o carcassone_n three_o year_n before_o whereof_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v in_o the_o 18_o chapter_n of_o the_o 2d_o part_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o the_o main_a i_o believe_v that_o since_o this_o council_n of_o avignon_n the_o people_n have_v by_o little_a and_o little_a be_v deprive_v of_o their_o just_a right_n from_o thence_o it_o be_v as_o i_o suppose_v that_o pope_n gregory_n the_o ten_o which_o order_v several_a thing_n about_o election_n in_o the_o council_n of_o lion_n in_o the_o year_n 1274_o 887._o tom._n 7._o council_n p._n 885._o ad_fw-la 887._o say_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o people_n although_o he_o speak_v several_a time_n in_o general_a term_n of_o those_o which_o do_v elect_v vii_o he_o who_o have_v consent_v to_o be_v ordain_v to_o the_o holy_a ministry_n shall_v receive_v the_o office_n which_o shall_v be_v give_v he_o and_o at_o his_o refusal_n shall_v be_v solicit_v by_o all_o convenient_a exhortation_n but_o he_o be_v not_o to_o be_v constrain_v conformity_n from_o the_o time_n that_o one_o have_v consent_v to_o make_v choice_n of_o he_o to_o settle_v he_o in_o the_o office_n of_o the_o holy_a ministry_n he_o be_v engage_v by_o a_o kind_n of_o promise_n that_o he_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o accomplish_v so_o that_o it_o be_v just_a to_o represent_v his_o duty_n to_o he_o and_o to_o exhort_v he_o to_o bear_v without_o reluctancy_n the_o yoke_n which_o he_o have_v a_o design_n to_o take_v on_o he_o nevertheless_o because_o these_o kind_n of_o action_n shall_v be_v free_a and_o that_o the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n ought_v to_o be_v without_o constraint_n it_o can_v reasonable_o be_v use_v towards_o those_o which_o refuse_v to_o accept_v this_o office_n whatever_o inclination_n they_o have_v to_o it_o before_o according_a to_o which_o the_o three_o council_n of_o orleans_n assemble_v anno_fw-la dom._n 538._o discharge_v the_o pastor_n which_o be_v choose_v into_o order_n by_o force_n or_o against_o their_o will_n it_o discharge_v they_o from_o their_o employment_n without_o debar_v they_o from_o the_o communion_n 250._o can._n 7._o t._n 1._o conc._n gal._n p._n 250._o but_o as_o for_o bishop_n that_o have_v the_o confidence_n to_o make_v such_o ordination_n the_o synod_n impose_v on_o they_o a_o year_n penance_n and_o suspend_v they_o from_o the_o function_n of_o their_o ministry_n the_o 36th_o canon_n of_o those_o which_o go_v in_o the_o apostle_n name_n differ_v a_o little_a from_o this_o practice_n and_o be_v something_o more_o severe_a in_o the_o main_a the_o ancient_a discipline_n never_o approve_v force_n nor_o constraint_n in_o these_o occasion_n although_o some_o instance_n be_v find_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n viii_o the_o election_n of_o minister_n shall_v be_v confirm_v by_o prayer_n and_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n nevertheless_o in_o avoid_v all_o superstition_n according_a to_o the_o form_n which_o follow_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n common_o observe_v in_o the_o church_n of_o france_n in_o the_o ordination_n of_o minister_n all_o abovesaid_a have_v be_v observe_v two_o pastor_n which_o for_o this_o purpose_n have_v be_v depute_v by_o the_o synod_n or_o colloque_n to_o lay_v hand_n on_o he_o that_o be_v elect_v be_v come_v to_o the_o appoint_a place_n he_o of_o they_o that_o be_v to_o pray_v shall_v brief_o treat_v of_o the_o institution_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o ministry_n allege_v the_o passage_n of_o scripture_n most_o fit_v to_o the_o occasion_n as_o eph._n 4.11_o luk_n 10.16_o joh._n 20.21_o 1_o cor._n 4.1_o 2._o 2_o cor._n 5.18_o 19_o 20._o 1_o tim._n 1.2_o etc._n etc._n and_o other_o the_o like_a exhort_v each_o one_o to_o beware_v to_o the_o end_n that_o as_o well_o the_o minister_n as_o the_o people_n discharge_v their_o duty_n the_o minister_n discharge_v himself_o so_o much_o the_o more_o careful_o of_o his_o employment_n as_o he_o know_v it_o be_v precious_a and_o excellent_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o the_o people_n receive_v with_o all_o reverence_n the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o shall_v be_v deliver_v by_o he_o which_o be_v send_v unto_o they_o then_o shall_v be_v read_v in_o the_o presence_n of_o all_o what_o be_v write_v 1_o tim_n 3_o tit._n 1._o and_o 1_o pet._n 5._o where_o the_o apostle_n teach_v what_o a_o minister_n shall_v be_v and_o to_o the_o end_n god_n will_v be_v please_v to_o bestow_v his_o grace_n on_o he_o which_o be_v ordain_v well_o and_o faithful_o to_o acquit_v himself_o a_o short_a prayer_n shall_v be_v make_v to_o this_o effect_n wherein_o the_o say_a minister_n shall_v include_v these_o word_n or_o other_o to_o the_o same_o effect_n that_o thou_o will_v be_v please_v oh_o god_n to_o endow_v with_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o thy_o spirit_n this_o thy_o servant_n lawful_o elect_v according_a to_o the_o order_n establish_v in_o thy_o church_n supply_v he_o abundant_o with_o all_o gift_n necessary_a for_o well_o discharge_v his_o trust_n to_o the_o glory_n of_o thy_o holy_a name_n the_o edification_n of_o thy_o church_n and_o the_o salvation_n of_o he_o who_o be_v now_o dedicate_v and_o consecrate_v by_o our_o ministry_n then_o they_o shall_v lay_v their_o hand_n on_o his_o head_n he_o that_o pray_v stand_v at_o the_o chair_n and_o he_o for_o who_o he_o pray_v on_o his_o knee_n prayer_n be_v end_v and_o the_o new_a pastor_n stand_v up_o the_o two_o deputy_n of_o the_o synod_n or_o colloque_n shall_v in_o presence_n of_o all_o the_o people_n give_v he_o the_o hand_n of_o fellowship_n and_o let_v this_o form_n with_o the_o direction_n abovesaid_a be_v general_o observe_v in_o all_o the_o church_n conformity_n there_o be_v several_a consideration_n to_o be_v make_v on_o this_o article_n and_o on_o the_o form_n which_o be_v above_o recite_v in_o the_o first_o place_n the_o minister_n to_o who_o it_o belong_v to_o preach_v aught_o in_o his_o sermon_n to_o treat_v of_o the_o institution_n and_o excellency_n of_o the_o ministry_n and_o of_o the_o duty_n of_o this_o weighty_a office_n whereupon_o we_o find_v a_o great_a many_o excellent_a passage_n in_o the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o the_o church_n and_o several_a holy_a reflection_n capable_a to_o infuse_v into_o pastor_n a_o ardent_a zeal_n and_o a_o sincere_a affection_n in_o perform_v the_o several_a duty_n of_o their_o office_n not_o to_o speak_v of_o gregory_n the_o first_o have_v compose_v a_o entire_a treatise_n to_o explain_v the_o function_n of_o this_o excellent_a office_n and_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o ordination_n it_o be_v signify_v to_o those_o which_o be_v to_o receive_v it_o whereunto_o the_o conduct_n of_o soul_n which_o god_n commit_v to_o their_o charge_n oblige_v they_o the_o first_o canon_n of_o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n insinuate_v it_o thus_o have_v touch_v all_o the_o several_a thing_n about_o which_o he_o will_v have_v he_o examine_v which_o be_v to_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o ministry_n 727._o tom._n 1._o council_n p._n 727._o he_o add_v when_o he_o have_v receive_v the_o episcopacy_n in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n christ_n let_v he_o not_o follow_v his_o pleasure_n nor_o the_o inclination_n of_o his_o mind_n but_o let_v he_o submit_v and_o acquiesce_v to_o these_o decree_n of_o the_o father_n and_o i_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o what_o be_v practise_v in_o africa_n in_o the_o time_n of_o this_o council_n in_o the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n do_v tacit_o warn_v they_o of_o their_o duty_n for_o we_o find_v in_o the_o second_o canon_n that_o two_o bishop_n lay_v on_o his_o head_n the_o book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o hold_v it_o there_o during_o the_o whole_a action_n we_o read_v almost_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o the_o constitution_n under_o the_o apostle_n name_n and_o in_o the_o roman_a pontificial_a and_o in_o the_o xi_o chap._n of_o the_o second_o book_n of_o durandus_fw-la his_o rational_a st._n chrysostom_n or_o rather_o some_o
report_n of_o zozoman_n be_v make_v bishop_n for_o honour_n sake_n only_o without_o assign_v they_o any_o church_n however_o barse_n in_o time_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o edessa_n and_o enlogius_n succeed_v he_o xi_o those_o who_o be_v ordain_v into_o the_o ministry_n be_v to_o understand_v they_o be_v enter_v into_o it_o for_o their_o whole_a life_n if_o they_o be_v not_o lawful_o dismiss_v for_o good_a consideration_n and_o that_o by_o the_o provincial_a synod_n conformity_n the_o seven_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n forbid_v those_o that_o have_v be_v once_o admit_v into_o the_o clergy_n to_o bear_v arm_n or_o to_o exercise_v any_o worldly_a dignity_n that_o be_v the_o synod_n require_v that_o they_o shall_v always_o abide_v in_o the_o profession_n they_o have_v take_v upon_o they_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o forsake_v the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n rusticus_n bishop_n of_o narbona_n have_v write_v to_o pope_n leo_n the_o be_v it_o that_o he_o be_v so_o move_v with_o the_o scandal_n which_o daily_o happen_v that_o he_o can_v wish_v to_o be_v free_v from_o the_o episcopal_a office_n to_o lead_v a_o more_o tranquil_a and_o quiet_a life_n the_o pope_n answer_v the_o bishop_n letter_n 111._o tom._n 1._o conc._n gall._n p._n 111._o intimate_v to_o he_o that_o he_o can_v not_o with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n forsake_v the_o office_n he_o have_v undertake_v nor_o flinch_v from_o the_o employment_n commit_v to_o his_o trust_n it_o be_v in_o this_o same_o sense_n that_o pope_n felix_n the_o iv_o ann._n dom._n 528._o write_v to_o caesarius_n bishop_n of_o arles_n that_o the_o establishment_n of_o church-guide_n ought_v to_o be_v firm_a and_o immutable_a 153._o tom._n 1._o conc._n gall._n p._n 254._o tom._n 7._o conc._n p._n 153._o in_o the_o year_n 895._o there_o be_v a_o council_n hold_v at_o tribury_n near_o mayence_n compose_v of_o 22_o bishop_n which_o in_o the_o 17_o canon_n renew_v that_o of_o chalcedon_n which_o we_o above_o cite_v and_o which_o anathematise_v those_o of_o the_o clergy_n which_o do_v not_o repent_v of_o have_v leave_v their_o cure_n and_o which_o do_v not_o return_v to_o they_o pope_n calixtus_n the_o ii_o assemble_v a_o council_n at_o tholouza_n the_o canon_n whereof_o be_v insert_v in_o the_o 18_o chapter_n of_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr marca_n 8_o book_n de_fw-fr concordia_fw-la imperii_fw-la &_o sacerdotii_fw-la the_o 10_o of_o these_o canon_n excommunicate_v the_o clergy_n we_o speak_v of_o until_o they_o have_v repent_v of_o their_o prevarication_n a_o great_a while_n before_o 1638._o tom._n 5._o part._n 2._o p._n 211._o paris_n 1638._o to_o wit_n in_o the_o vth_o century_n and_o before_o the_o assemble_v of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n st._n cyril_n of_o alexandria_n complain_v of_o this_o abuse_n in_o his_o canonical_a epistle_n there_o be_v say_v he_o another_o thing_n which_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v that_o there_o be_v priest_n which_o present_a renunciation_n by_o writing_n for_o if_o they_o be_v worthy_a to_o exercise_v the_o holy_a ministry_n they_o must_v reside_v on_o it_o and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o worthy_a they_o do_v not_o leave_v it_o for_o their_o resignation_n but_o because_o their_o own_o deed_n condemn_v they_o thence_o it_o be_v that_o loup_n abbot_n of_o ferrier_n in_o gattinois_n say_v in_o the_o ixth_o century_n that_o as_o nothing_o but_o adultery_n can_v dissolve_v carnal_a wedlock_n so_o also_o it_o be_v not_o permit_v to_o lay_v aside_o the_o pastoral_n charge_v once_o receive_v 1664._o ep._n 2_o paris_n 1664._o whilst_o one_o may_v contribute_v to_o the_o good_a of_o the_o flock_n nevertheless_o there_o be_v sundry_a example_n of_o those_o which_o in_o divers_a time_n and_o in_o divers_a place_n have_v for_o quietness_n sake_n renounce_v the_o ministry_n that_o be_v they_o have_v forbear_v exercise_v the_o function_n and_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o a_o bishop_n thus_o be_v be_v it_o do_v by_o eustathius_n 429._o tom._n 3._o conc._n p._n 428_o 429._o metropolitan_a of_o pamphilia_n to_o who_o the_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o ephesus_n in_o the_o year_n 431._o preserve_v the_o name_n honour_n and_o communion_n of_o a_o bishop_n martirius_fw-la bishop_n of_o antioch_n withdraw_v himself_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o extravagance_n of_o his_o clergy_n the_o disobedience_n of_o his_o people_n and_o the_o corruption_n of_o his_o church_n but_o in_o preserve_v to_o himself_o the_o honour_n and_o dignity_n of_o the_o ministry_n as_o theodorus_n lector_fw-la write_v in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n 555._o l._n 1._o p._n 555._o in_o the_o next_o age_n there_o happen_v almost_o the_o same_o thing_n to_o paul_n bishop_n of_o the_o same_o city_n of_o antioch_n in_o the_o vith_o century_n and_o in_o the_o very_a infancy_n of_o religion_n st._n clement_n 800._o tom._n 3._o conc._n p._n 800._o disciple_n of_o the_o apostle_n advise_v pastor_n who_o church_n be_v not_o well_o satisfy_v with_o they_o he_o counsel_v they_o to_o go_v elsewhere_o and_o to_o acquiesce_v to_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o people_n assure_v they_o to_o obtain_v a_o great_a degree_n of_o glory_n in_o christ_n jesus_n add_v 69._o ep._n ad_fw-la cor._n p._n 69._o that_o those_o who_o have_v live_v according_a to_o the_o rule_n god_n have_v prescribe_v have_v always_o and_o will_v ever_o do_v after_o this_o manner_n because_o they_o ought_v to_o desire_v nothing_o more_o than_o the_o peace_n and_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n pope_n innocent_a the_o iiid_n in_o the_o one_a book_n of_o decretal_n tit_n 9_o cap._n 10._o nisi_fw-la cum_fw-la pridem_fw-la propose_v sundry_a reason_n wherefore_o it_o may_v be_v permit_v to_o renounce_v the_o conduct_n of_o a_o flock_n for_o instance_n the_o reproach_n our_o conscience_n make_v we_o of_o some_o crime_n infirmity_n of_o body_n want_v of_o knowledge_n the_o wickedness_n of_o the_o people_n some_o grievous_a scandal_n or_o some_o personal_a irregularity_n these_o be_v the_o reason_n for_o which_o this_o pope_n think_v one_o may_v desire_v to_o be_v discharge_v from_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n xii_o the_o office_n of_o minister_n be_v principal_o to_o preach_v and_o declare_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o their_o people_n and_o they_o shall_v be_v desire_v to_o abstain_v from_o teach_v in_o any_o strange_a way_n not_o tend_v to_o edification_n and_o conform_v to_o the_o simplicity_n and_o ordinary_a style_n of_o god_n spirit_n take_v heed_n there_o may_v be_v nothing_o in_o their_o sermon_n which_o may_v bring_v any_o prejudice_n to_o the_o honour_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n they_o shall_v not_o preach_v without_o choose_v for_o the_o subject-matter_n of_o their_o discourse_n some_o text_n of_o the_o bible_n which_o they_o shall_v keep_v close_o to_o and_o their_o text_n they_o shall_v take_v and_o explain_v the_o best_a they_o can_v avoid_v all_o unnecessary_a amplification_n tedious_a and_o needless_a digression_n of_o many_o passage_n of_o scripture_n not_o pertinent_a to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n and_o of_o recite_v various_a exposition_n they_o shall_v be_v moderate_a in_o allege_v the_o write_n of_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o much_o less_o profane_a author_n and_o history_n they_o shall_v not_o deliver_v their_o doctrine_n in_o scholastic_a manner_n nor_o intermix_v with_o strange_a language_n to_o conclude_v let_v they_o avoid_v every_o thing_n that_o may_v tend_v to_o ostentation_n or_o any_o way_n give_v occasion_n to_o suspect_v it_o to_o which_o the_o consistory_n colloques_fw-la and_o synod_n shall_v take_v special_a heed_n conformity_n the_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n be_v the_o principal_a duty_n of_o the_o holy_a ministry_n the_o compiler_n of_o our_o discipline_n have_v take_v particular_a care_n exact_o to_o prescribe_v to_o minister_n the_o subject_a and_o manner_n of_o do_v it_o these_o be_v the_o two_o thing_n contain_v in_o this_o great_a article_n as_o to_o what_o regard_v the_o subject_a of_o their_o sermon_n it_o must_v always_o be_v take_v in_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n call_v it_o the_o dispensation_n of_o the_o word_n of_o faith_n 12._o can._n 12._o and_o of_o the_o right_n and_o true_a word_n and_o it_o be_v with_o regard_n hereunto_o 820._o tom._n 1._o council_n p._n 728._o tom._n 4._o council_n p._n 820._o that_o of_o carthage_n ann._n 398._o appoint_v in_o the_o 20_o canon_n that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v apply_v himself_o only_o to_o read_v prayer_n and_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n the_o council_n of_o toledo_n assemble_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 675._o employ_v the_o 2d_o of_o its_o canon_n to_o prescribe_v to_o pastor_n their_o duty_n say_v they_o shall_v always_o have_v in_o their_o mouth_n the_o sword_n of_o truth_n be_v powerful_a in_o exhort_v by_o holy_a doctrine_n and_o to_o convince_v gainsayer_n and_o not_o to_o turn_v aside_o from_o
the_o creed_n proportionable_a to_o the_o capacity_n of_o those_o who_o he_o instruct_v to_o put_v they_o into_o a_o state_n fit_a to_o receive_v baptism_n and_o to_o be_v plunge_v in_o the_o mystical_a water_n of_o this_o sacrament_n of_o our_o regeneration_n but_o to_o ascend_v high_a than_o st._n cyril_n 29._o euseb_n hist_o l._n 5._o c._n 10._o &_o l._n 6._o c._n 6._o can._n 3._o etc._n etc._n 26._o can._n 15_o &_o 29._o from_o the_o very_a first_o beginning_n of_o christian_a religion_n there_o be_v public_a school_n at_o alexandria_n and_o place_n appoint_v for_o this_o exercise_n and_o where_o the_o rudiment_n of_o faith_n be_v teach_v or_o as_o the_o apostle_n speak_v the_o rudiment_n of_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o the_o 2d_o century_n pantenus_n a_o eminent_a philosop_n keep_v this_o school_n and_o then_o exercise_v the_o office_n of_o catechist_n clement_n of_o alexandria_n succeed_v he_o and_o he_o have_v origen_n for_o his_o successor_n age_a but_o 18._o year_n origen_n leave_v the_o conduct_n of_o this_o school_n to_o heraclas_n and_o heraclas_n to_o dennis_n and_o these_o two_o last_o be_v successive_o bishop_n of_o alexandria_n the_o author_n of_o our_o discipline_n have_v therefore_o good_a reason_n to_o exhort_v the_o church_n to_o have_v frequent_a catechise_n which_o be_v of_o great_a benefit_n and_o singular_a edification_n fourteen_o minister_n with_o their_o family_n shall_v actual_o reside_v in_o their_o church_n or_o parish_n under_o pain_n of_o be_v depose_v from_o their_o office_n conformity_n in_o the_o first_o age_n pastor_n be_v so_o full_a of_o zeal_n for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o so_o industrious_a for_o the_o edification_n of_o their_o flock_n that_o it_o be_v superfluous_a to_o exhort_v they_o to_o residence_n see_v they_o have_v no_o other_o thought_n but_o to_o do_v it_o in_o the_o place_n assign_v to_o their_o care_n and_o where_o the_o family_n live_v which_o be_v commit_v to_o their_o conduct_n neither_o do_v we_o find_v in_o those_o time_n any_o canon_n which_o enjoin_v they_o to_o this_o residence_n because_o they_o themselves_o of_o their_o own_o free_a will_n be_v incline_v to_o do_v it_o and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o hear_v of_o that_o a_o pastor_n do_v not_o dwell_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o the_o flock_n to_o who_o he_o owe_v his_o care_n and_o presence_n lapsis_fw-la de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la st._n cyprian_n complain_v of_o certain_a bishop_n which_o encumber_v themselves_o with_o secular_a affair_n abandon_v their_o church_n and_o the_o care_n of_o that_o holy_a administration_n whereof_o they_o be_v to_o render_v a_o account_n to_o our_o saviour_n and_o in_o his_o 56_o epistle_n to_o those_o of_o thibari_fw-la he_o show_v that_o in_o the_o present_a conjuncture_n he_o can_v not_o safe_o leave_v his_o church_n and_o the_o people_n god_n have_v commit_v to_o his_o charge_n st._n ambrose_n sufficient_o testify_v that_o he_o be_v real_o persuade_v of_o the_o necessity_n of_o residence_n when_o he_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n that_o if_o the_o dread_n he_o have_v of_o the_o tyrant_n eugenius_n have_v oblige_v he_o to_o quit_v milan_n for_o a_o little_a time_n yet_o he_o return_v thither_o as_o soon_o as_o the_o storm_n be_v pass_v over_o 1632._o lib._n 7._o ep._n 58._o to._n 5._o p._n 322._o p●r._n 1632._o i_o hasten_v say_v he_o to_o return_v as_o soon_o as_o ever_o i_o hear_v that_o he_o who_o presence_n i_o think_v i_o be_v bind_v to_o shun_v be_v go_v for_o i_o forsake_v not_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n which_o the_o providence_n of_o god_n commit_v to_o my_o care_n but_o i_o desire_v not_o to_o see_v he_o that_o make_v himself_o guilty_a of_o sacrilege_n he_o speak_v of_o eugenius_n who_o usurp_v the_o empire_n after_o have_v cruel_o put_v to_o death_n the_o emperor_n valentinian_n the_o young_a this_o holy_a doctor_n elsewhere_o represent_v the_o damage_n occasion_v to_o the_o church_n by_o the_o absence_n of_o its_o pastor_n especial_o when_o he_o observe_v the_o people_n omit_v frequent_v the_o holy_a exercise_n and_o not_o only_o the_o people_n but_o also_o the_o clergy_n themselves_o become_v more_o remiss_a in_o thing_n of_o piety_n and_o religion_n st._n austin_n declare_v plain_o in_o the_o 138_o and_o 227_o epistle_n that_o he_o never_o forsake_v his_o church_n but_o upon_o indispensible_a necessity_n in_o a_o request_n present_v by_o some_o friar_n to_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n the_o young_a and_o valentinian_n the_o three_o against_o nestorius_n they_o accuse_v he_o among_o other_o thing_n that_o for_o the_o execute_v his_o outrage_n he_o employ_v foreign_a clerk_n which_o he_o make_v come_v from_o other_o part_n that_o be_v to_o say_v other_o clergy_n beside_o his_o own_o 222._o tom._n 2._o conc._n pag._n 222._o although_o according_a to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n say_v they_o they_o be_v not_o permit_v to_o live_v in_o another_o diocese_n or_o in_o another_o church_n but_o only_o in_o those_o place_n and_o city_n where_o they_o receive_v ordination_n by_o the_o imposition_n of_o hand_n there_o to_o reside_v peaceable_o it_o be_v not_o easy_a to_o affirm_v with_o certainty_n if_o the_o canon_n whereof_o they_o speak_v be_v reduce_v into_o writing_n or_o rather_o if_o they_o be_v not_o custom_n and_o use_n settle_v in_o the_o church_n by_o long_a practice_n for_o this_o term_n of_o canon_n or_o rule_n have_v sometime_o this_o signification_n in_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o ancient_n and_o what_o induce_v i_o to_o think_v so_o be_v that_o till_o the_o five_o century_n when_o this_o request_n be_v present_v it_o be_v not_o very_o needful_a to_o make_v canon_n to_o oblige_v pastor_n to_o reside_v in_o their_o church_n if_o it_o be_v not_o that_o one_o may_v apply_v to_o this_o residence_n the_o canon_n which_o prohibit_v the_o translation_n of_o bishop_n from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o whereof_o we_o shall_v treat_v hereafter_o i_o know_v very_o well_o that_o the_o council_n of_o sardis_n have_v in_o the_o year_n 347_o make_v some_o decree_n which_o in_o some_o fort_n regard_v residence_n but_o beside_o that_o these_o canon_n be_v not_o much_o know_v in_o the_o east_n they_o be_v not_o proper_o make_v for_o establish_v of_o residence_n nor_o precise_o to_o oblige_v bishop_n thereunto_o but_o only_o to_o inform_v they_o in_o presuppose_v it_o as_o a_o indispensible_a obligation_n in_o what_o occasion_n and_o for_o what_o time_n they_o be_v permit_v lawful_o to_o be_v absent_a from_o their_o church_n in_o effect_n in_o the_o eight_o canon_n the_o father_n of_o sardis_n allow_v bishop_n may_v go_v to_o court_n if_o the_o emperor_n send_v for_o they_o or_o if_o the_o protection_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o poor_a of_o widow_n and_o orphan_n oblige_v they_o to_o it_o it_o be_v true_a that_o in_o the_o nine_o and_o ten_o canon_n they_o restrain_v the_o permission_n grant_v in_o the_o former_a and_o do_v not_o permit_v bishop_n to_o go_v themselves_o to_o court_n but_o when_o they_o be_v call_v by_o the_o prince_n nevertheless_o they_o agree_v they_o may_v send_v one_o of_o their_o deacon_n to_o obtain_v some_o favour_n in_o behalf_n of_o distress_a person_n but_o they_o consent_v to_o it_o upon_o prudent_a and_o judicious_a reason_n and_o which_o be_v to_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o necessary_a precaution_n against_o the_o ambition_n of_o bishop_n to_o who_o the_o same_o council_n positive_o forbid_v 15._o can._n 14_o 15._o to_o be_v absent_a from_o their_o church_n above_o three_o week_n unless_o some_o press_a necessity_n constrain_v they_o to_o it_o when_o under_o the_o second_o branch_n of_o our_o king_n the_o prince_n cast_v his_o eye_n on_o any_o bishop_n to_o make_v he_o his_o arch-chaplain_n he_o be_v force_v to_o demand_v leave_n of_o the_o synod_n and_o pope_n 217._o con._n fran._n cap._n 55._o tom._n 2._o conc._n gall._n p._n 217._o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v already_o get_v great_a power_n in_o france_n i_o say_v he_o be_v force_v in_o some_o sort_n to_o desire_v their_o leave_n to_o get_v he_o away_o from_o his_o church_n to_o have_v he_o near_o his_o person_n because_o every_o body_n be_v then_o persuade_v that_o pastor_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o make_v their_o residence_n in_o the_o midst_n of_o their_o flock_n i_o believe_v plurality_n of_o live_n as_o be_v speak_v at_o this_o time_n have_v give_v a_o mortal_a blow_n to_o the_o case_n of_o residency_n and_o have_v by_o this_o mean_n introduce_v ignorance_n into_o the_o church_n and_o together_o with_o ignorance_n superstition_n which_o be_v the_o daughter_n of_o ignorance_n this_o wicked_a custom_n be_v a_o long_a while_o unknown_a among_o christian_n see_v the_o first_o canon_n which_o formal_o condemn_v it_o be_v if_o my_o memory_n fail_v not_o the_o five_o of_o the_o sixteen_o council_n of_o toledo_n assemble_v the_o year_n
our_o lord_n 506._o 165._o tom._n 1._o conc._n gall._n can._n 21._o p._n 165._o the_o council_n of_o agde_v in_o languedoc_n make_v a_o decree_n which_o in_o some_o sort_n refer_v to_o this_o settlement_n for_o it_o suffer_v those_o who_o for_o the_o convenience_n of_o their_o family_n desire_v to_o have_v a_o oratory_n or_o as_o they_o speak_v nowadays_o a_o chapel_n in_o the_o country_n beside_o the_o common_a place_n of_o assemble_v it_o permit_v they_o there_o to_o serve_v god_n except_o it_o be_v on_o principal_a feast-day_n for_o on_o this_o occasion_n it_o enjoin_v they_o to_o come_v to_o their_o parish_n excommunicate_v the_o churchman_n that_o shall_v serve_v in_o those_o oratory_n if_o they_o attempt_v any_o thing_n against_o this_o decree_n 132._o collect._n rom._n part_n 2._o c._n 41._o p._n 132._o unless_o it_o be_v by_o the_o order_n or_o permission_n of_o the_o bishop_n in_o who_o diocese_n the_o chapel_n be_v thence_o be_v it_o that_o pope_n leo_n the_o ivth_o forbid_v layman_n to_o establish_v a_o priest_n in_o any_o church_n whatever_o without_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n the_o council_n of_o meaux_n in_o the_o year_n 845._o exhort_v prince_n and_o lord_n to_o order_v it_o so_o that_o the_o priest_n which_o serve_v in_o their_o chapel_n shall_v be_v ready_a to_o hinder_v and_o banish_v from_o their_o house_n all_o manner_n of_o vice_n and_o be_v careful_a to_o instruct_v the_o domestic_n because_o parish-priest_n and_o bishop_n and_o minister_n be_v to_o do_v so_o unto_o the_o poor_a and_o mean_a of_o the_o people_n agabard_n bishop_n of_o lion_n in_o the_o same_o century_n complain_v in_o a_o book_n he_o write_v of_o the_o law_n of_o priesthood_n he_o complain_v i_o say_v 1666._o tom._n 1_o p._n 134_o 135_o paris_n 1666._o of_o the_o abuse_n which_o reign_v among_o great_a lord_n in_o regard_n of_o their_o priest_n and_o chaplain_n and_o of_o the_o little_a esteem_n they_o make_v of_o they_o require_v of_o they_o service_n altogether_o unworthy_a the_o degree_n they_o be_v to_o hold_v and_o because_o these_o priest_n dwell_v in_o the_o house_n of_o person_n of_o quality_n they_o be_v call_v their_o priest_n 121._o pag._n 121._o and_o it_o be_v say_v the_o priest_n of_o such_o a_o lord_n the_o which_o pope_n nicholas_n the_o it_v can_v not_o suffer_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o chronicle_n of_o hugh_n of_o flavigny_n contain_v in_o the_o one_a volume_n of_o the_o library_n of_o father_n labbe_n imprint_v at_o paris_n ann._n 1657._o there_o be_v in_o the_o 6_o tome_n of_o the_o council_n divers_a canon_n of_o a_o synod_n which_o as_o some_o think_v be_v assemble_v at_o pavia_n in_o the_o year_n 850._o in_o the_o 18_o of_o which_o the_o priest_n whereof_o we_o speak_v be_v call_v acephales_n 444._o pag._n 444._o and_o those_o which_o have_v they_o in_o their_o family_n be_v warn_v not_o to_o entertain_v any_o but_o such_o as_o have_v be_v examine_v by_o the_o bishop_n pope_n vrban_n the_o iid_n in_o the_o 9th_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n which_o he_o hold_v at_o melphe_n 504._o tom._n 7._o conc._n p._n 504._o in_o the_o year_n 1090._o say_v near_o hand_n the_o same_o thing_n and_o make_v such_o another_o decree_n xxii_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o a_o minister_n to_o leave_v his_o flock_n without_o leave_n of_o the_o colloque_n or_o provincial_a synod_n of_o the_o church_n to_o the_o which_o he_o be_v give_v conformity_n this_o rule_n be_v very_o judicious_a to_o hinder_v minister_n from_o leave_v their_o flock_n slight_o and_o without_o permission_n of_o those_o which_o have_v power_n to_o dispose_v of_o their_o ministry_n this_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o 3d_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n in_o the_o year_n 341._o which_o forbid_v priest_n and_o deacon_n and_o all_o those_o of_o the_o clergy_n to_o abandon_v their_o church_n to_o go_v unto_o other_o suspend_v from_o the_o ministry_n those_o that_o do_v so_o especial_o if_o after_o be_v warn_v by_o their_o bishop_n they_o do_v not_o speedy_o return_v to_o the_o church_n which_o they_o leave_v and_o depose_v without_o any_o hope_n of_o restoration_n those_o which_o shall_v persevere_v in_o their_o disobedience_n with_o menace_n to_o the_o bishop_n which_o shall_v receive_v they_o to_o be_v censure_v by_o the_o synod_n according_a to_o their_o merit_n or_o as_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n will_v have_v it_o be_v excommunicate_v with_o the_o desertor_n 20._o can._n 10_o &_o 20._o until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o return_v to_o their_o church_n add_v also_o to_o this_o the_o 23d_o of_o the_o same_o council_n with_o the_o 18_o and_o 13_o of_o ancyra_n xxiii_o the_o deserter_n of_o the_o ministry_n shall_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o the_o provincial_a synod_n if_o they_o do_v not_o repent_v and_o reassume_a the_o office_n god_n have_v commit_v to_o they_o conformity_n the_o council_n of_o sevill_n in_o the_o year_n 619._o can._n 3._o for_o some_o time_n exile_v the_o deserter_n into_o a_o monastery_n after_o have_v degrade_v he_o of_o the_o honour_n and_o degree_n of_o a_o minister_n but_o without_o take_v away_o from_o he_o all_o hope_n of_o be_v restore_v after_o a_o punishment_n proportion_v to_o his_o fault_n to_o the_o end_n by_o this_o mean_n to_o restrain_v the_o libertinism_n of_o deserter_n gratian_n cite_v this_o canon_n in_o his_o decret_n cap._n 21._o q._n 2._o placuit_fw-la ut_fw-la si_fw-la xxiv_o minister_n shall_v not_o be_v vagabond_n and_o shall_v not_o have_v liberty_n of_o their_o own_o free_a authority_n to_o intrude_v themselves_o where_o they_o please_v conformity_n the_o council_n of_o ancyra_n in_o the_o year_n 314._o make_v a_o decree_n which_o be_v very_o conformable_a to_o this_o of_o our_o discipline_n if_o those_o which_o have_v be_v orduine_v bishop_n say_v he_o 18._o can._n 18._o be_v not_o receive_v into_o the_o church_n for_o which_o they_o have_v be_v name_v and_o that_o nevertheless_o they_o endeavour_v to_o get_v into_o other_o and_o to_o offer_v violence_n to_o those_o that_o be_v due_o establish_v and_o to_o stir_v up_o trouble_n against_o they_o let_v such_o be_v depose_v but_o if_o they_o will_v continue_v in_o the_o presbytery_n wherein_o they_o be_v former_o priest_n let_v they_o not_o lose_v the_o honour_n of_o episcopacy_n whereas_o if_o they_o stir_v up_o sedition_n against_o those_o which_o be_v settle_v bishop_n it_o be_v fit_a they_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o honour_n of_o the_o preshytery_n 11._o tom._n 1._o conc_fw-fr gal._n p._n 126._o c●n._n 11._o and_o intirel●d_v pose_v the_o it_v council_n of_o t●●rs_n assemble_v ann_n 46._o require_v that_o he_o be_v excommunicate_v from_o the_o clergy_n which_o forsake_v his_o church_n without_o the_o bishop_n permission_n to_o settle_v himself_o in_o any_o other_o place_n 5._o ibid._n p._n 138._o c._n 5._o that_o of_o rheims_n order_n almost_o the_o very_a same_o thing_n again_o church-vagabond_n in_o the_o year_n 465._o in_o the_o council_n of_o valentia_n in_o spain_n assemble_v ann._n 524._o the_o like_a edict_n be_v make_v against_o inconstant_a and_o wander_a clerk_n can._n 5._o tom._n 3._o conc._n pag._n 820._o see_v synesius_n on_o the_o 22d_o article_n in_o his_o 67th_o epistle_n how_o he_o declaim_v against_o these_o wander_a clergyman_n whether_o they_o be_v bishop_n or_o other_o and_o judge_n it_o be_v not_o fit_a they_o shall_v have_v any_o public_a mark_n of_o honour_n among_o the_o clergy_n nor_o admission_n into_o any_o other_o church_n to_o oblige_v they_o to_o return_v to_o their_o own_o xxv_o the_o minister_n of_o one_o church_n can_v preach_v in_o another_o without_o first_o obtain_v leave_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o it_o unless_o in_o case_n of_o his_o absence_n in_o which_o case_n it_o must_v be_v the_o consistory_n must_v give_v he_o leave_v and_o if_o the_o flock_n be_v disperse_v by_o reason_n of_o persecution_n or_o other_o trouble_n the_o foreign_a minister_n shall_v endeavour_v to_o assemble_v the_o deacon_n and_o elder_n which_o if_o he_o can_v do_v he_o shall_v nevertheless_o be_v permit_v to_o preach_v to_o reunite_v the_o flock_n conformity_n we_o former_o observe_v on_o the_o 18_o article_n that_o a_o bishop_n have_v no_o power_n to_o undertake_v any_o thing_n without_o his_o diocese_n within_o the_o compass_n whereof_o he_o be_v oblige_v to_o limit_v all_o the_o function_n of_o his_o ministry_n and_o we_o prove_v it_o by_o sundry_a canon_n needless_a here_o to_o be_v repeat_v it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o add_v unto_o they_o the_o 20_o canon_n of_o the_o vith_o ecumenical_a council_n which_o be_v yet_o more_o formal_a than_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n to_o the_o matter_n now_o in_o question_n see_v here_o in_o what_o sort_n the_o father_n have_v lay_v it_o down_o that_o it_o be_v not_o permit_v for_o a_o bishop_n to_o preach_v public_o in_o any_o city_n which_o be_v not_o
be_v do_v by_o approbation_n of_o the_o synod_n which_o shall_v put_v another_o in_o the_o place_n of_o he_o they_o send_v away_o thence_o it_o be_v that_o pope_n gellasius_fw-la the_o first_o do_v not_o always_o simple_o condemn_v these_o translation_n but_o only_o then_o when_o they_o be_v make_v without_o cause_n hinemar_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n in_o the_o nine_o century_n authorise_v these_o change_n when_o there_o be_v good_a cause_n for_o they_o or_o necessity_n and_o that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o order_n of_o the_o synod_n and_o he_o also_o produce_v sundry_a instance_n of_o this_o practice_n i_o do_v not_o mention_v the_o first_o epistle_n of_o pelagius_n the_o second_o who_o establish_v or_o rather_o approve_v for_o the_o like_a motive_n these_o kind_n of_o translation_n because_o i_o be_o persuade_v it_o be_v false_a and_o spurious_a xxxi_o when_o a_o minister_n be_v persecute_v or_o for_o some_o other_o cause_n can_v exercise_v his_o office_n in_o the_o church_n whereunto_o he_o be_v appoint_v he_o may_v be_v send_v elsewhere_o by_o the_o say_a church_n or_o a_o exchange_n shall_v be_v make_v of_o he_o for_o some_o other_o for_o a_o time_n by_o the_o consent_n and_o good_a like_n of_o both_o the_o church_n but_o if_o the_o minister_n will_v not_o submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o both_o church_n he_o shall_v impart_v the_o reason_n of_o his_o refusal_n to_o the_o consistory_n and_o there_o it_o shall_v be_v judge_v if_o they_o be_v sufficient_a and_o if_o they_o be_v not_o find_v to_o be_v so_o and_o that_o yet_o the_o minister_n persist_v to_o refuse_v the_o say_a office_n the_o difference_n shall_v be_v transfer_v to_o the_o next_o provincial_a synod_n or_o to_o the_o colloque_n if_o the_o church_n be_v of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o colloque_n conformity_n the_o ancient_a christian_n which_o have_v foresee_v the_o inconvenience_n which_o regard_v our_o discipline_n in_o this_o article_n have_v make_v divers_a rule_n to_o remedy_v it_o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 347_o the_o council_n of_o sardis_n in_o these_o term_n set_v down_o the_o word_n of_o their_o last_o canon_n if_o violence_n be_v do_v to_o a_o bishop_n and_o that_o he_o be_v cast_v out_o unjust_o through_o malice_n for_o the_o discipline_n he_o have_v exercise_v or_o for_o the_o catholic_n faith_n which_o he_o confess_v or_o for_o the_o truth_n which_o he_o defend_v and_o that_o be_v innocent_a and_o fly_v from_o danger_n he_o come_v to_o another_o church_n let_v he_o not_o be_v hinder_v to_o abide_v there_o until_o such_o time_n as_o he_o can_v return_v and_o that_o a_o end_n be_v put_v to_o the_o trouble_n which_o he_o suffer_v for_o it_o will_v be_v cruel_a not_o to_o receive_v with_o all_o humanity_n and_o good_a will_n him_z which_o suffer_v persecution_n 20._o 〈◊〉_d 20._o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o forbid_v to_o quit_v the_o church_n one_o have_v serve_v in_o from_o the_o first_o time_n of_o one_o promotion_n except_v those_o which_o have_v be_v constrain_v to_o forsake_v their_o country_n have_v pass_v into_o another_o church_n according_a to_o which_o gregory_n the_o first_o establish_v a_o certain_a bishop_n call_v john_n which_o have_v be_v drive_v away_o from_o his_o church_n by_o the_o enemy_n which_o have_v take_v possession_n of_o the_o place_n i_o say_v he_o settle_v he_o in_o another_o on_o condition_n to_o return_v back_o to_o his_o former_a church_n as_o soon_o as_o it_o recover_v its_o ancient_a liberty_n it_o be_v also_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n he_o serve_v agnellus_n bishop_n of_o fundi_n which_o upon_o a_o like_a occasion_n he_o prefer_v to_o the_o church_n of_o terracina_n the_o same_o be_v practise_v in_o france_n in_o the_o ix_o century_n in_o regard_n of_o actard_a bishop_n of_o nants_n the_o city_n have_v be_v sack_v and_o plunder_v by_o the_o britain_n and_o norman_n he_o be_v make_v archbishop_n of_o tours_n as_o hinomar_n affirm_v who_o live_v in_o that_o time_n and_o at_o large_a relate_v the_o history_n in_o his_o 45_o epistle_n which_o we_o cite_v on_o the_o forego_n article_n and_o all_o that_o he_o blame_v in_o actard_a be_v that_o he_o will_v have_v hold_v both_o church_n of_o tours_n and_o nants_n contrary_a to_o the_o prohibition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n except_v this_o he_o approve_v that_o when_o a_o pastor_n be_v persecute_v and_o drive_v from_o his_o church_n he_o shall_v be_v provide_v of_o another_o the_o friar_n blastares_n be_v of_o the_o same_o judgement_n and_o he_o support_v it_o by_o the_o 13_o and_o 22._o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n in_o syntagm_n lett._n a._n cap._n 9_o pag._n 22._o xxxii_o minister_n may_v with_o their_o like_n be_v lend_v by_o the_o consistory_n as_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v require_v but_o the_o loan_n shall_v not_o be_v make_v without_o the_o advice_n of_o two_o or_o three_o minister_n or_o of_o the_o colloque_n if_o it_o be_v for_o more_o than_o six_o month_n conformity_n st._n paul_n say_v charity_n be_v the_o bond_n of_o perfectness_n and_o all_o those_o of_o one_o communion_n be_v to_o be_v unite_v by_o this_o sacred_a bond_n they_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n upon_o all_o occasion_n to_o show_v reciprocal_a mark_n of_o sincere_a and_o true_a love_n and_o because_o there_o be_v none_o more_o sensible_a than_o those_o which_o have_v for_o their_o scope_n and_o aim_n our_o instruction_n and_o consolation_n they_o can_v be_v mutual_o refuse_v without_o violate_v the_o law_n of_o christian_a charity_n it_o be_v by_o such_o a_o principle_n that_o when_o there_o be_v among_o the_o primitive_a christian_n any_o church_n destitute_a of_o a_o pastor_n that_o next_o unto_o it_o be_v oblige_v to_o take_v care_n and_o visit_v it_o from_o time_n to_o time_n to_o impart_v unto_o it_o instruction_n and_o consolation_n there_o be_v several_a prescription_n to_o this_o purpose_n in_o the_o monument_n of_o ecclesiastical_a antiquity_n particular_o in_o st._n gregory_n epistle_n and_o all_o these_o rule_n in_o effect_n amount_v to_o what_o be_v here_o prescribe_v in_o our_o discipline_n xxxiii_o minister_n lend_v when_o the_o time_n for_o which_o they_o be_v lend_v be_v expire_v they_o shall_v return_v to_o the_o service_n of_o the_o church_n from_o whence_o they_o go_v conformity_n when_o a_o church_n for_o some_o time_n borrow_v the_o ministry_n of_o a_o pastor_n which_o be_v settle_v in_o another_o church_n which_o consent_v to_o this_o loan_n there_o be_v no_o need_n to_o doubt_v but_o that_o when_o the_o time_n of_o loan_n be_v expire_v he_o may_v re-enter_v into_o the_o church_n which_o lend_v he_o and_o which_o in_o lend_v he_o do_v not_o disclaim_v their_o right_n in_o he_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n at_o the_o very_a instant_n a_o flock_n be_v provide_v of_o a_o pastor_n he_o that_o visit_v it_o in_o the_o time_n of_o its_o widowhood_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whilst_o it_o be_v without_o a_o conductor_n return_v no_o more_o to_o it_o and_o exercise_v the_o function_n of_o his_o ministry_n no_o where_o but_o in_o his_o own_o church_n xxxiv_o if_o in_o one_o year_n after_o the_o time_n of_o loan_n be_v expire_v the_o church_n dont_fw-fr re-demand_a its_o pastor_n he_o shall_v belong_v to_o the_o church_n which_o borrow_v he_o always_o provide_v the_o minister_n willing_o consent_v thereunto_o but_o if_o he_o be_v not_o willing_a he_o shall_v submit_v to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o colloque_n or_o synod_n of_o the_o church_n to_o which_o he_o have_v be_v lend_v and_o this_o rule_n also_o shall_v be_v in_o force_n for_o the_o minister_n which_o by_o reason_n of_o persecution_n shall_v fly_v to_o other_o church_n and_o the_o persecution_n cease_v not_o be_v demand_v by_o their_o former_a church_n in_o a_o year_n time_n the_o which_o shall_v commence_v after_o the_o warning_n which_o shall_v have_v be_v give_v to_o the_o say_v first_o church_n by_o the_o say_a minister_n conformity_n because_o it_o may_v so_o shall_v out_o that_o a_o church_n which_o shall_v have_v lend_v one_o of_o her_o minister_n do_v not_o recall_v he_o after_o the_o expiration_n of_o time_n for_o which_o he_o be_v lend_v no_o difficulty_n be_v make_v of_o translate_n he_o whole_o to_o the_o church_n which_o have_v borrow_v he_o the_o silence_n of_o the_o other_o be_v then_o look_v upon_o as_o a_o kind_n of_o consent_n which_o also_o be_v to_o be_v apply_v to_o those_o which_o join_v themselves_o to_o other_o church_n by_o reason_n of_o persecution_n be_v not_o redemanded_a by_o they_o when_o the_o persecution_n be_v over_o for_o on_o these_o occasion_n it_o be_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o have_v grant_v unto_o they_o those_o letter_n of_o congé_fw-fr which_z the_o ancient_n call_v dimissoria_n with_o the_o which_o a_o churchman_n can_v serve_v in_o another_o church_n in_o
the_o same_o province_n or_o in_o any_o other_o xxxv_o him_n who_o be_v destitute_a of_o a_o church_n for_o not_o be_v employ_v in_o the_o province_n and_o shall_v be_v lend_v elsewhere_o out_o of_o the_o province_n by_o the_o colloque_n until_o the_o meeting_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o the_o say_a province_n if_o he_o be_v not_o employ_v by_o the_o say_a synod_n in_o the_o province_n he_o shall_v remain_v proper_a to_o the_o church_n to_o which_o he_o be_v lend_v if_o he_o consent_v thereto_o and_o the_o say_a church_n also_o conformity_n this_o article_n depend_v of_o the_o forego_v one_o and_o be_v no_o more_o but_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o rule_n we_o have_v examine_v amine_v therefore_o it_o be_v needless_a to_o add_v to_o what_o have_v be_v say_v to_o this_o purpose_n xxxvi_o to_o the_o end_n that_o congregation_n shall_v acquit_v themselves_o of_o their_o duty_n to_o their_o pastor_n as_o the_o word_n of_o god_n enjoin_v they_o and_o that_o cause_n shall_v not_o be_v give_v to_o minister_n to_o be_v dissatisfy_v and_o even_o to_o leave_v they_o the_o say_v flock_n shall_v be_v advertise_v to_o allow_v they_o what_o shall_v be_v necessary_a conformity_n when_o jesus_n christ_n first_o send_v forth_o his_o disciple_n to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n he_o forbid_v they_o to_o provide_v gold_n or_o silver_n allege_v for_o this_o prohibition_n that_o the_o labourer_n be_v worthy_a of_o his_o hire_n st._n paul_n who_o wrought_v with_o his_o own_o hand_n that_o he_o may_v be_v burdensome_a to_o none_o nevertheless_o appoint_v in_o his_o epistle_n the_o obligation_n flock_n have_v to_o their_o pastor_n say_v none_o go_v a_o warfare_n at_o his_o own_o expense_n that_o he_o that_o plant_v a_o vine_n cat_n of_o the_o fruit_n and_o he_o that_o feed_v a_o flock_n drink_v of_o the_o milk_n of_o it_o that_o what_o the_o law_n say_v thou_o shall_v not_o mussle_v the_o ox_n which_o tread_v out_o the_o corn_n be_v to_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n who_o ought_v to_o receive_v temporal_a thing_n of_o those_o to_o who_o they_o sow_v spiritual_a thing_n that_o those_o which_o be_v employ_v about_o holy_a thing_n do_v eat_v of_o that_o which_o be_v holy_a and_o those_o which_o serve_v at_o the_o altar_n do_v participate_v of_o the_o altar_n that_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o lord_n ordain_v 9.14_o 1_o cor._n 9.14_o that_o those_o which_o preach_v the_o gospel_n shall_v live_v of_o the_o gospel_n the_o charity_n of_o christian_n who_o live_v present_o after_o the_o holy_a apostle_n be_v so_o servant_n that_o they_o suffer_v not_o those_o which_o be_v ordain_v to_o instruct_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o heaven_n to_o lack_v any_o thing_n and_o although_o in_o those_o first_o age_n they_o live_v on_o the_o voluntary_a oblation_n of_o believer_n nevertheless_o they_o have_v suslicient_a for_o their_o maintenance_n and_o support_n and_o for_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o because_o these_o offering_n be_v divide_v among_o the_o clergy_n each_o have_v his_o portion_n or_o at_o least_o they_o spend_v altogether_o that_o which_o fall_v to_o their_o share_n and_o also_o impart_v to_o the_o relief_n of_o indigent_a clerk_n and_o other_o brethren_n 109._o ep._n 66._o p._n 109._o which_o be_v in_o want_n and_o which_o st._n crprian_n design_n by_o sportulantes_fw-la fratres_fw-la a_o expressien_a sound_n in_o the_o testament_n of_o perpetu_fw-la bishop_n of_o tours_n in_o the_o five_o century_n insert_v by_o dom_n luke_n d'achery_n in_o the_o five_o tome_n of_o his_o collection_n the_o 25_o can._n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n appoint_v that_o the_o bishop_n shall_v receive_v of_o the_o church-stores_a what_o shall_v be_v convenient_a for_o the_o necessary_a support_n of_o life_n both_o for_o himself_o and_o for_o the_o brethren_n which_o lodge_v in_o his_o house_n and_o the_o 36_o syne_v of_o agde_v in_o the_o year_n 506_o require_v that_o all_o the_o clerk_n which_o serve_v in_o the_o church_n faithful_o 168._o tom._n 1._o conc_fw-fr 〈◊〉_d p._n 168._o and_o with_o care_n receive_v of_o their_o bishop_n the_o wage_n due_a for_o their_o labour_n proportionable_a to_o the_o service_n they_o yield_v or_o according_a as_o the_o canon_n do_v appoint_v after_o all_o when_o riches_n come_v flow_v into_o the_o church_n in_o several_a province_n they_o divide_v they_o into_o four_o equal_a portion_n the_o bishop_n have_v one_o the_o clergy_n another_o the_o three_o be_v for_o the_o poor_a and_o the_o four_o for_o repair_v the_o church_n but_o in_o the_o country_n where_o they_o divide_v they_o into_o three_o portion_n as_o in_o spain_n one_o three_o be_v for_o the_o bishop_n one_o three_o for_o the_o clergy_n and_o the_o other_o three_o for_o the_o poor_a and_o reparation_n of_o temple_n xxxvii_o and_o to_o avoid_v the_o ingratitude_n of_o those_o which_o have_v be_v find_v unworthy_o to_o treat_v their_o pastor_n this_o order_n shall_v be_v observe_v to_o pay_v they_o aforehand_o one_o quarter_n salary_n of_o the_o pension_n which_o have_v be_v promise_v they_o yearly_o conformity_n be_v the_o charity_n of_o the_o christian_n of_o this_o age_n as_o great_a as_o be_v that_o of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n those_o who_o labour_v in_o compose_v our_o discipline_n have_v not_o be_v oblige_v to_o have_v make_v so_o many_o rule_n to_o provide_v for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o minister_n they_o will_v have_v find_v a_o sufficient_a propensity_n in_o the_o mind_n of_o their_o people_n to_o have_v contribute_v to_o their_o necessity_n but_o this_o charity_n be_v abate_v and_o the_o people_n be_v but_o too_o much_o incline_v to_o pay_v those_o with_o ingratitude_n which_o labour_n for_o their_o instruction_n it_o be_v expedient_a to_o multiply_v law_n to_o procure_v for_o they_o a_o moderate_a maintenance_n without_o the_o which_o a_o minister_n can_v subsist_v xxxviii_o and_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v doubt_v of_o miscarriage_n herein_o lest_o there_o shall_v happen_v damage_n to_o the_o church_n those_o elect_a to_o manage_v the_o action_n of_o the_o colloques_fw-la shall_v inquire_v of_o the_o elder_n of_o each_o church_n what_o allowance_n they_o make_v their_o minister_n and_o the_o care_n they_o take_v in_o administer_a what_o have_v be_v appoint_v to_o the_o end_n that_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o colloques_fw-la it_o may_v be_v remedy_v conformity_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o french_a protestant_n live_v common_o on_o the_o equal_a contribution_n of_o their_o congregation_n it_o become_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o author_n of_o their_o discipline_n to_o remove_v all_o dissiculty_n which_o may_v retard_v or_o hinder_v these_o voluntary_a contribution_n whereon_o depend_v their_o subsistence_n have_v no_o stock_n for_o their_o maintenance_n thirty-nine_o when_o necessary_a support_n be_v refuse_v to_o a_o minister_n and_o that_o he_o have_v make_v his_o complaint_n and_o application_n and_o that_o three_o month_n be_v elapse_v it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o the_o say_a pastor_n to_o range_v himself_o to_o another_o church_n by_o advice_n of_o the_o colloque_n or_o provincial_a synod_n and_o in_o case_n of_o urgent_a necessity_n the_o colloques_fw-la or_o synod_n may_v shorten_v the_o term_n of_o three_o month_n and_o if_o necessity_n so_o require_v and_o that_o three_o month_n be_v elapse_v and_o that_o he_o continue_v unprovided_a although_o the_o minister_n have_v make_v his_o complaint_n to_o be_v set_v at_o liberty_n it_o shall_v suffice_v that_o he_o call_v into_o his_o consistery_n the_o two_o adjacent_a mimsler_n and_o shall_v not_o be_v bind_v to_o stay_v for_o the_o consent_n of_o any_o colloque_n nor_o synod_n unless_o one_o of_o those_o assembly_n be_v summon_v in_o the_o same_o month_n to_o the_o which_o he_o may_v have_v recourse_n conformity_n see_v that_o according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n those_o which_o preach_v the_o gospel_n shall_v live_v by_o the_o gospel_n it_o can_v reasonable_o be_v refute_v minister_n to_o who_o the_o flock_n do_v not_o apply_v necessary_a subsistence_n i_o say_v one_o can_v refuse_v he_o the_o liberty_n of_o join_v himself_o to_o another_o which_o be_v more_o tender_a and_o grateful_a especial_o when_o he_o have_v nothing_o else_o to_o subsist_v upon_o it_o be_v true_a this_o shall_v not_o be_v do_v without_o the_o advice_n of_o his_o superior_n that_o be_v to_o say_v without_o consent_n of_o the_o colloque_n or_o provincial_a synod_n which_o may_v dispose_v of_o his_o ministry_n xl._n upon_o the_o knowledge_n and_o judgement_n which_o shall_v be_v make_v of_o the_o ingratitude_n of_o the_o people_n upon_o the_o minister_n complaint_n all_o circumstance_n must_v be_v prudent_o weigh_v and_o as_o well_o principal_a regard_n shall_v be_v have_v to_o the_o poverty_n of_o the_o church_n as_o to_o the_o faculty_n and_o way_n of_o he_o which_o make_v the_o complaint_n the_o better_a to_o
volume_n of_o his_o work_n and_o in_o the_o 25_o upon_o st._n matthew_n in_o the_o 2d_o edition_n at_o paris_n an._n 1514._o st._n basil_n lay_v down_o several_a rule_n in_o his_o moral_n for_o the_o conduct_n of_o pastor_n who_o as_o he_o say_v shall_v be_v a_o example_n unto_o other_o and_o do_v in_o the_o first_o place_n what_o they_o desire_v other_o shall_v do_v preach_v the_o gospel_n with_o a_o holy_a freedom_n and_o bear_v witness_n to_o it_o although_o there_o may_v be_v some_o which_o forbid_v so_o do_v and_o persecute_v to_o death_n those_o which_o do_v it_o he_o will_v have_v they_o render_v god_n thanks_o for_o those_o which_o be_v convert_v and_o that_o they_o shall_v pray_v to_o god_n for_o they_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v grow_v in_o grace_n daily_o that_o they_o shall_v have_v care_n not_o only_o of_o those_o which_o be_v present_a but_o also_o of_o the_o absent_a and_o that_o they_o shall_v omit_v nothing_o which_o may_v tend_v to_o their_o edification_n and_o salvation_n desire_v they_o will_v therein_o exercise_v themselves_o constant_o as_o well_o in_o public_a as_o private_a he_o say_v moreover_o that_o the_o minister_n shall_v be_v tender_a and_o full_a of_o compassion_n especial_o towards_o those_o who_o soul_n be_v mortal_o sick_a that_o he_o shall_v charitable_o contribute_v to_o their_o bodily_a necessity_n without_o abuse_v his_o power_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o those_o under_o his_o conduct_n and_o without_o exalt_v himself_o over_o they_o but_o rather_o take_v occasion_n to_o exercise_v humility_n towards_o they_o he_o add_v in_o conclusion_n that_o he_o which_o be_v establish_v in_o the_o church_n to_o be_v a_o guide_n to_o other_o shall_v neither_o say_v nor_o do_v any_o thing_n but_o with_o a_o great_a deal_n of_o prudence_n and_o circumspection_n to_o render_v himself_o acceptable_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n as_o if_o he_o be_v to_o be_v approve_v by_o their_o judgement_n and_o testimony_n i_o can_v allege_v several_a other_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o confirm_v the_o same_o thing_n but_o because_o what_o i_o have_v say_v be_v sufficient_a for_o establish_v this_o truth_n i_o proceed_v to_o the_o consideration_n of_o what_o follow_v in_o the_o article_n which_o we_o examine_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o magistrate_n to_o have_v a_o eye_n over_o minister_n and_o to_o take_v care_n they_o walk_v orderly_o in_o their_o vocation_n etc._n etc._n the_o good_a king_n of_o israel_n do_v so_o under_o the_o old_a discipline_n oblige_v the_o minister_n of_o the_o sanctuary_n to_o do_v their_o office_n and_o religious_o to_o perform_v all_o thing_n which_o pertain_v to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n under_o the_o oeconomy_n of_o grace_n the_o example_n of_o constantius_n of_o theodosius_n of_o marcien_n of_o leo_n and_o sundry_a other_o which_o have_v assemble_v several_a council_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o to_o preserve_v the_o church_n from_o the_o poison_n of_o heresy_n and_o schism_n i_o say_v all_o these_o example_n do_v not_o in_o the_o least_o suffer_v we_o to_o doubt_v but_o that_o prince_n and_o sovereign_n have_v right_a to_o supervise_v over_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n and_o be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o endeavour_v the_o advancement_n of_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o preservation_n of_o his_o worship_n in_o all_o purity_n and_o not_o to_o go_v far_o than_o our_o france_n who_o be_v there_o at_o this_o time_n but_o do_v know_v the_o diligence_n of_o our_o king_n on_o a_o great_a many_o occasion_n the_o many_o council_n they_o have_v assemble_v and_o to_o many_o of_o they_o have_v prescribe_v the_o subject_n and_o matter_n of_o their_o deliberation_n which_o be_v a_o authentic_a proof_n and_o the_o capitulary_n which_o we_o have_v still_o in_o our_o hand_n of_o charlemagne_n of_o lewis_n le_fw-fr debonnaire_a and_o of_o charles_n the_o bald_a be_v also_o so_o many_o authentic_a evidence_n it_o be_v hereupon_o that_o constantine_n say_v in_o eusebius_n 44._o ●●b_n 4._o de_fw-la vit._n const_n ●_o 24._o &_o l._n 1._o c._n 44._o that_o god_n have_v establish_v he_o bishop_n that_o he_o shall_v take_v care_n of_o thing_n which_o pass_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o the_o same_o treatise_n he_o be_v call_v the_o common_a bishop_n establish_v by_o god_n in_o the_o 6_o action_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n there_o be_v give_v to_o marcien_fw-fr the_o title_n of_o sacerdos_n st._n remy_n call_v clovis_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o country_n tom._n 1._o conc._n gall._n p._n 204._o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o mayence_n in_o the_o year_n 819._o call_v charlemagne_n the_o director_n of_o the_o true_a religion_n and_o the_o defender_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n which_o the_o 6_o synod_n of_o paris_n in_o the_o year_n 829._o say_v also_o of_o lewis_n le_fw-fr debonnaire_a and_o of_o lothaire_n his_o son_n it_o be_v also_o in_o all_o likelihood_n by_o the_o same_o motive_n that_o in_o the_o 98th_o letter_n of_o loup_n abbot_n of_o ferrier_n where_o there_o be_v mention_n of_o the_o promotion_n of_o aeneas_n to_o the_o bishopric_n of_o paris_n in_o the_o 9th_o century_n the_o gift_n of_o the_o prince_n be_v join_v to_o that_o of_o god_n as_o if_o one_o have_v be_v full_o persuade_v in_o france_n that_o the_o king_n be_v in_o god_n stead_n in_o establish_v of_o bishop_n thence_o it_o be_v also_o that_o whereas_o loup_n in_o the_o 29_o letter_n write_v that_o aldrich_n be_v make_v bishop_n of_o sens_n by_o the_o command_n of_o caesar_n the_o friar_n clarius_n in_o his_o chronicle_n of_o st._n peter_n vif_n of_o sens_n say_v that_o it_o happen_v by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n to_o intimate_v that_o the_o power_n whereof_o prince_n be_v in_o possession_n be_v give_v they_o from_o heaven_n it_o be_v the_o reason_n wherefore_o in_o the_o 2d_o council_n of_o thionville_n in_o the_o year_n 844._o it_o be_v say_v that_o bishop_n be_v give_v of_o god_n regular_o design_v by_o prince_n they_o mean_v the_o child_n of_o lewis_n le_fw-fr debonnaire_a and_o consecrate_a by_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n in_o the_o life_n of_o nicetas_n who_o be_v bishop_n of_o lion_n in_o the_o 6_o century_n it_o be_v observe_v that_o the_o good_a will_n of_o the_o prince_n give_v he_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n to_o be_v bishop_n to_o this_o church_n xlvii_o minister_n that_o teach_v bad_a doctrine_n shall_v be_v depose_v if_o they_o persist_v after_o have_v be_v several_a time_n warn_v also_o those_o which_o do_v not_o obey_v holy_a admonition_n give_v they_o by_o the_o consistory_n take_v out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n those_o also_o which_o shall_v lead_v scandalous_a life_n those_o which_o shall_v be_v convince_v of_o heresy_n schism_n rebellion_n against_o ecclesiastical_a order_n and_o manifest_a blasphemy_n worthy_a of_o secular_a punishment_n simony_n and_o all_o corruption_n by_o present_n endeavour_n to_o have_v another_o place_n forsake_v their_o flock_n without_o due_a leave_n and_o just_a occasion_n falshood_n perjury_n adultery_n theft_n drunkenness_n fight_v worthy_a of_o be_v punish_v by_o the_o law_n usury_n sport_n forbid_v by_o law_n and_o scandalous_a dance_v and_o other_o like_a dissolution_n any_o crime_n have_v the_o mark_n of_o infamy_n any_o crime_n which_o shall_v in_o another_o deserve_v separation_n from_o the_o church_n and_o those_o which_o be_v insufficient_a to_o discharge_v their_o office_n conformity_n the_o truth_n of_o the_o holy_a trust_n commit_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o after_o they_o to_o their_o successor_n have_v ever_o be_v so_o dear_a and_o precious_a to_o those_o among_o they_o which_o have_v be_v follower_n of_o the_o zeal_n and_o piety_n of_o those_o first_o minister_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n that_o they_o can_v not_o suffer_v it_o shall_v be_v alter_v without_o severe_o punish_v those_o which_o sow_v tare_n among_o this_o good_a corn_n and_o especial_o pastor_n who_o they_o depose_v from_o their_o office_n at_o the_o very_a instant_n that_o they_o teach_v doctrine_n contrary_a to_o this_o heavenly_a truth_n when_o paul_n of_o samosatia_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n stir_v up_o by_o the_o evil_a spirit_n have_v the_o impudence_n in_o the_o 3d_o century_n to_o teach_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v but_o mere_a man_n the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n come_v flock_v from_o all_o part_n as_o against_o the_o enemy_n and_o destroyer_n of_o the_o flock_n and_o fold_v of_o the_o lord_n but_o this_o heretic_n have_v avoid_v the_o sentence_n of_o his_o condemnation_n in_o the_o first_o synod_n hold_v at_o antioch_n against_o he_o in_o the_o 12_o year_n of_o the_o emperor_n gallien_n and_o about_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 266._o because_o he_o promise_v to_o change_v his_o opinion_n he_o be_v at_o length_n depose_v in_o the_o year_n 170._o in_o another_o assembly_n in_o the_o
he_o and_o if_o he_o appear_v and_o that_o he_o confess_v or_o be_v convict_v of_o the_o crime_n he_o be_v accuse_v of_o they_o shall_v declare_v what_o punishment_n he_o have_v deserve_v but_o if_o be_v summon_v he_o do_v appear_v it_o require_v to_o send_v two_o bishop_n to_o cite_v he_o a_o second_o time_n and_o if_o he_o fail_v again_o that_o two_o other_o be_v send_v to_o cite_v he_o a_o three_o time_n and_o if_o through_o contempt_n and_o rebellion_n he_o refuse_v to_o appear_v after_o those_o three_o citation_n it_o require_v the_o synod_n to_o pronounce_v against_o he_o what_o they_o shall_v think_v fit_a fear_v lest_o fly_v from_o judgement_n he_o may_v think_v to_o have_v gain_v his_o cause_n i_o almost_o forget_v to_o have_v speak_v a_o word_n of_o dance_a and_o other_o disorder_n which_o be_v prohibit_v to_o our_o minister_n in_o the_o 47th_o article_n which_o be_v very_o conformable_a to_o the_o 45th_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n especial_o if_o also_o one_o consider_v the_o 35th_o of_o the_o same_o council_n l._n if_o a_o minister_n be_v convict_v of_o enormous_a and_o notorious_a sin_n he_o shall_v speedy_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o consistory_n call_v unto_o it_o the_o colloque_n or_o in_o default_n of_o it_o two_o or_o three_o unsuspected_a minister_n and_o in_o case_n the_o guilty_a pastor_n complain_v of_o wrong_n and_o injury_n the_o whole_a matter_n shall_v be_v report_v to_o a_o provincial_a synod_n if_o he_o have_v preach_v heretical_a doctrine_n he_o shall_v present_o be_v suspend_v by_o the_o colloque_n the_o consistory_n or_o two_o or_o three_o minister_n thereunto_o call_v as_o above_o until_o such_o time_n as_o the_o provincial_a synod_n have_v determine_v the_o case_n and_o all_o sentence_n of_o suspension_n for_o whatsoever_o it_o be_v shall_v nevertheless_o admit_v of_o appeal_n until_o final_a judgement_n be_v give_v conformity_n although_o this_o article_n have_v be_v already_o explain_v in_o what_o have_v be_v deliver_v in_o the_o precede_a one_o yet_o i_o will_v add_v something_o for_o the_o full_a clear_n of_o it_o i_o say_v then_o it_o be_v so_o do_v in_o regard_n of_o paul_n of_o samosatia_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n who_o be_v convict_v of_o heresy_n be_v present_o depose_v as_o eusebius_n inform_v we_o the_o 25_o canon_n of_o the_o apostle_n ordain_v to_o inflict_v the_o same_o punishment_n on_o bishop_n on_o priest_n and_o deacon_n which_o shall_v be_v convict_v of_o fornication_n of_o perjury_n and_o of_o robbery_n and_o a_o council_n of_o lerida_n of_o which_o we_o have_v already_o make_v mention_n show_v no_o more_o favour_n against_o churchman_n convict_v of_o enormous_a and_o cry_a sin_n allege_v for_o a_o reason_n that_o their_o vicious_a example_n be_v a_o scandal_n to_o the_o people_n of_o god_n the_o second_o council_n of_o sevill_n in_o the_o year_n 619._o decree_n in_o the_o 6_o canon_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v do_v by_o authority_n of_o the_o synod_n to_o which_o it_o refer_v as_o our_o discipline_n do_v the_o definitive_a judgement_n of_o these_o deposition_n tom._n 4._o conc._n pag._n 559._o li._n the_o reason_n of_o the_o dposition_n shall_v not_o be_v divulge_v to_o the_o people_n if_o necessity_n do_v require_v it_o whereof_o those_o which_o shall_v have_v judge_v of_o the_o deposition_n shall_v do_v as_o they_o shall_v think_v convenient_a conformity_n this_o establishment_n in_o regard_n of_o depose_a minister_n be_v like_o that_o of_o pope_n leo_n i._o in_o regard_n of_o those_o who_o be_v to_o do_v public_a penance_n for_o be_v inform_v that_o in_o several_a part_n of_o italy_n the_o bishop_n cause_v public_o to_o be_v rehearse_v the_o sin_n of_o those_o which_o be_v to_o do_v penance_n 80._o ep._n 80._o he_o condemn_v this_o practice_n and_o express_o forbid_v to_o do_v so_o for_o the_o future_a 34._o ep._n can._n 2._o cap._n 34._o and_o a_o long_a time_n before_o leo_n st._n basil_n declare_v that_o the_o father_n have_v prohibit_v to_o divulge_v to_o the_o people_n the_o woman_n which_o be_v guilty_a of_o adultery_n either_o by_o their_o own_o confession_n or_o after_o have_v be_v convict_v of_o it_o lii_o the_o national_a synod_n shall_v be_v advertise_v by_o the_o provincial_a one_o of_o those_o which_o shall_v be_v depose_v to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v not_o receive_v they_o conformity_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n when_o any_o pastor_n be_v depose_v advice_n be_v give_v to_o all_o the_o church_n to_o the_o end_n that_o none_o shall_v receive_v he_o 30._o ersel_n hist_o l._n 7._o c._n 30._o according_a to_o which_o after_o the_o synod_n of_o antioch_n have_v depose_v paul_n of_o samosatia_n in_o the_o 3d_o century_n for_o heresy_n it_o write_v a_o long_a fair_a letter_n to_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o to_o all_o the_o church_n in_o general_a to_o inform_v they_o at_o large_a of_o all_o that_o have_v pass_v in_o the_o condemnation_n of_o this_o great_a heretic_n alexander_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n have_v condemn_v arrius_n and_o his_o adherent_n he_o also_o write_v to_o all_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n to_o the_o end_n 1598._o secrat_fw-mi hist_o eccles_n lib._n 1._o c._n 6._o p._n 13._o ult_n edit_fw-la pag._n 27._o paris_n 1598._o say_v he_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o receive_v he_o if_o by_o chance_n he_o shall_v have_v the_o confidence_n to_o go_v to_o you_o and_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o give_v credit_n to_o what_o eusebius_n or_o any_o one_o else_o may_v write_v to_o you_o in_o his_o behalf_n st._n hillary_n bishop_n of_o poitiers_n inform_v we_o in_o his_o fragment_n that_o the_o western_a bishop_n assemble_v at_o sirmium_n in_o the_o year_n 350._o have_v anathematise_v the_o heretic_n photin_n they_o send_v into_o the_o east_n the_o decree_n of_o his_o condemnation_n to_o inform_v they_o after_o the_o usual_a manner_n of_o what_o they_o have_v do_v against_o he_o 9_o lib._n 4._o c._n 9_o theodoret_n have_v preserve_v to_o we_o in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n the_o letter_n of_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n in_o illyria_n write_v about_o the_o year_n 370._o by_o which_o among_o other_o thing_n they_o inform_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o diocese_n of_o asia_n of_o the_o depose_v of_o certain_a clergyman_n 468._o tom._n 3._o council_n p._n 468._o infect_v with_o the_o impiety_n of_o arrius_n who_o name_n they_o express_v according_o the_o father_n of_o chalcedon_n say_v in_o their_o relation_n to_o the_o emperor_n that_o the_o sardick_n synod_n give_v notice_n into_o the_o east_n of_o what_o they_o have_v do_v against_o the_o remain_v of_o arrius_n as_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n do_v those_o of_o the_o west_n of_o their_o decree_n against_o apollinarius_n they_o go_v yet_o further_o for_o they_o publish_v these_o sentence_n of_o deposition_n in_o the_o church_n which_o have_v be_v advertise_v of_o it_o in_o short_a st._n austin_n in_o his_o 3d_o book_n against_o petilien_n chap._n 39_o make_v mention_n of_o a_o deacon_n call_v splendonius_n which_o have_v be_v depose_v in_o part_n of_o germany_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o his_o degradation_n be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n when_o they_o have_v receive_v notice_n of_o it_o by_o the_o prelate_n which_o have_v condemn_v he_o liii_o minister_n which_o have_v be_v depose_v for_o crime_n which_o deserve_v signal_n punishment_n or_o that_o bear_v mark_n of_o infamy_n can_v be_v restore_v to_o their_o office_n what_o acknowledgement_n soever_o they_o make_v as_o for_o other_o less_o fault_n after_o due_a acknowledgement_n make_v they_o may_v be_v restore_v by_o the_o national_a synod_n however_o to_o serve_v in_o another_o church_n and_o not_o otherwise_o conformity_n the_o 28_o canon_n of_o those_o ascribe_v to_o the_o apostle_n appoint_v to_o separate_v whole_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n the_o bishop_n the_o priest_n or_o deacon_n which_o have_v be_v depose_v for_o notorious_a crime_n have_v nevertheless_o the_o confidence_n to_o reassume_v the_o ministry_n which_o have_v be_v commit_v to_o he_o the_o four_o of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n leave_v he_o no_o hope_n at_o all_o of_o be_v re-establish_v no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o liberty_n to_o defend_v himself_o or_o plead_v his_o cause_n in_o another_o synod_n the_o 5_o canon_n treat_v not_o more_o favourable_o rebel_n and_o schismatic_n the_o 14_o and_o 15_o confirm_v the_o judgement_n of_o the_o provincial_a synod_n unless_o in_o case_n the_o opinion_n be_v divide_v in_o which_o case_n they_o prescribe_v to_o call_v other_o judge_n of_o some_o adjacent_a province_n the_o 29_o of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n speak_v of_o bishop_n which_o from_o the_o episcopal_a degree_n be_v descend_v to_o that_o of_o presbytery_n it_o declare_v that_o if_o they_o be_v condemn_v for_o just_a cause_n they_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o the_o honour_n of_o priesthood_n itself_o
there_o be_v need_n of_o establish_v this_o sort_n of_o government_n i_o have_v speak_v of_o and_o of_o which_o the_o holy_a penman_n have_v not_o mention_v the_o time_n of_o its_o settlement_n because_o it_o may_v be_v they_o have_v no_o particular_a occasion_n of_o do_v it_o as_o st._n luke_n have_v of_o write_v the_o history_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o deacon_n which_o probable_o may_v also_o have_v be_v unknown_a to_o we_o if_o the_o murmur_a of_o the_o greek_n against_o the_o jew_n because_o their_o widow_n be_v neglect_v at_o the_o ordinary_a service_n have_v not_o oblige_v he_o to_o transmit_v it_o in_o writing_n however_o it_o be_v that_o it_o may_v not_o be_v imagine_v i_o only_o insist_v on_o mere_a conjecture_n and_o conjecture_n utter_o destitute_a of_o the_o authority_n of_o tradition_n i_o will_v produce_v the_o formal_a testimony_n of_o hillary_n deacon_n of_o rome_n a_o writer_n of_o the_o four_o century_n who_o speak_v in_o this_o manner_n 582._o in_o 1_o tim._n 5._o 1_o 2._o apud_fw-la ambrose_n tom._n 3._o p._n 582._o the_o synogogue_n and_o the_o church_n afterward_o have_v elder_n without_o who_o advice_n nothing_o be_v do_v in_o the_o church_n and_o i_o can_v tell_v by_o what_o negligence_n the_o same_o have_v be_v abolish_v if_o it_o be_v not_o probable_o by_o the_o slothfulness_n of_o doctor_n or_o rather_o through_o their_o pride_n to_o make_v it_o be_v believe_v they_o be_v somebody_o it_o appear_v plain_o by_o these_o word_n of_o the_o deacon_n hillary_n that_o the_o church_n have_v her_o elder_n as_o well_o as_o the_o synogogue_n and_o that_o very_o early_o she_o begin_v to_o make_v use_n of_o they_o when_o he_o begin_v to_o write_v his_o commentary_n on_o st._n paul_n epistle_n for_o he_o complain_v of_o the_o abolish_n this_o holy_a custom_n which_o in_o all_o likelihood_n hold_v a_o considerable_a time_n after_o its_o first_o institution_n and_o in_o the_o very_a place_n itself_o where_o it_o be_v extinct_a by_o the_o negligence_n and_o malice_n of_o vain_a and_o ambitious_a man_n which_o do_v justify_v as_o i_o take_v it_o what_o i_o have_v say_v of_o its_o antiquity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o first_o establish_v of_o it_o be_v by_o the_o apostle_n or_o at_o least_o by_o their_o immediate_a successor_n if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o we_o can_v not_o find_v the_o footstep_n in_o the_o monument_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n that_o immediate_o follow_v the_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n nevertheless_o who_o know_v but_o claudius_n ephebius_n valerius_n biton_n and_o fortunatus_n which_o st._n clement_n disciple_n of_o the_o apostle_n send_v to_o the_o church_n of_o corinth_n with_o the_o excellent_a letter_n which_o he_o write_v to_o appease_v the_o trouble_n wherewith_o it_o be_v agitate_a who_o i_o say_v can_v tell_v but_o they_o be_v of_o those_o elder_n who_o original_a institution_n we_o seek_v for_o for_o he_o say_v nothing_o at_o all_o which_o may_v induce_v we_o to_o think_v they_o be_v either_o pastor_n or_o deacon_n moreover_o in_o the_o three_o century_n firmillian_a bishop_n of_o caesaria_n in_o cappadocia_n and_o one_o of_o the_o most_o celebrate_a prelate_n of_o his_o time_n make_v mention_n of_o elder_n which_o he_o join_v with_o pastor_n for_o the_o treat_v of_o affair_n which_o concern_v the_o good_a and_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n 1631._o seniores_fw-la &_o praepositi_fw-la apud_fw-la cypri_n pag._n 144._o optat._n l._n 1._o p._n 41._o par._n 1631._o we_o meet_v together_o say_v he_o every_o year_n elder_n and_o minister_n to_o settle_v and_o order_v matter_n commit_v to_o our_o care_n and_o with_o common_a consent_n to_o treat_v of_o the_o weighty_a and_o most_o important_a affair_n about_o fifty_o year_n after_o mensurius_n bishop_n of_o carthage_n have_v receive_v order_n to_o follow_v the_o emperor_n court_n he_o commit_v to_o the_o trust_n of_o certain_a elder_n say_v optatus_n of_o milvetan_n several_a ornament_n of_o gold_n and_o silver_n which_o appertain_v to_o the_o church_n but_o afterward_o he_o make_v a_o note_n of_o they_o which_o he_o give_v to_o a_o old_a woman_n with_o order_n to_o give_v it_o to_o his_o successor_n if_o it_o happen_v that_o he_o die_v in_o his_o journey_n as_o it_o fall_v out_o he_o do_v so_o that_o cecilian_a have_v be_v establish_v in_o the_o place_n of_o mensurius_n the_o woman_n fail_v not_o to_o give_v he_o the_o note_v she_o have_v by_o virtue_n of_o which_o he_o call_v for_o those_o elder_n to_o who_o mensurius_n have_v commit_v this_o trust_n in_o the_o belief_n he_o have_v that_o they_o be_v good_a honest_a man_n but_o these_o perfidious_a person_n willing_a to_o satisfy_v their_o own_o covetous_a desire_n convert_v the_o gold_n and_o silver_n to_o their_o own_o private_a use_n cecillian_n be_v frustrate_v of_o his_o expectation_n and_o as_o he_o be_v go_v about_o to_o compel_v they_o they_o rend_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n a_o good_a part_n of_o the_o people_n and_o begin_v the_o schism_n of_o the_o donatist_n which_o prove_v so_o destructive_a to_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n and_o what_o invincible_o prove_v they_o be_v lay-elders_a like_o we_o be_v that_o optatus_n express_o distinguish_v they_o from_o botrus_fw-la and_o celesius_n which_o be_v of_o the_o clergy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o carthage_n and_o who_o not_o attain_v to_o the_o degree_n of_o bishop_n to_o which_o their_o ambition_n make_v they_o aspire_v they_o herd_v with_o these_o corrupt_a elder_n together_o with_o lucilla_n a_o factious_a and_o powerful_a woman_n who_o of_o a_o long_a time_n endeavour_v the_o ruin_n of_o cecilian_a see_v here_o already_o sufficient_a argument_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o matter_n we_o examine_v nevertheless_o because_o many_o do_v imagine_v that_o our_o practice_n in_o regard_n of_o elder_n be_v new_a and_o unknown_a to_o the_o ancient_a church_n it_o will_v not_o be_v amiss_o to_o insist_v a_o little_a long_o on_o this_o subject_n and_o to_o allege_v far_a proof_n the_o better_a to_o establish_v the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o practice_n which_o we_o defend_v i_o will_v begin_v with_o the_o act_n of_o justification_n of_o cecilian_a and_o of_o foelix_n of_o aptonge_n his_o ordainer_n which_o be_v at_o the_o end_n of_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr laubespine_n bishop_n of_o orleans_n his_o note_n on_o optatus_n bishop_n of_o mileva_n in_o numidia_n in_o these_o act_n which_o be_v ancient_a than_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a there_o be_v several_a thing_n which_o direct_o regard_v our_o subject_n as_o what_o be_v say_v on_o occasion_n of_o money_n give_v by_o lucilla_n a_o woman_n of_o quality_n to_o have_v make_v majorinus_n bishop_n 268._o pag._n 268._o that_o all_o the_o bishop_n the_o priest_n the_o deacon_n and_o the_o elder_n have_v knowledge_n of_o it_o and_o some_o line_n after_o a_o bishop_n call_v purpurius_n write_v to_o silvanus_n bishop_n of_o cirthe_n who_o be_v accuse_v of_o several_a thing_n to_o employ_v those_o of_o his_o clergy_n and_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o people_n which_o be_v ecclesiastical_a person_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v give_v a_o account_n of_o the_o nature_n of_o these_o dissension_n and_o in_o the_o follow_a page_n there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o a_o letter_n write_v to_o the_o clergy_n and_o to_o the_o elder_n and_o six_o page_n after_o one_o maximus_n say_v inst_z pag._n 276._o inst_z i_o speak_v in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o elder_n and_o christian_a people_n of_o the_o catholic_n law_n st._n 250._o tom._n 7._o pag._n 191._o c._n 56._o tom._n 2._o p._n 250._o austin_n in_o his_o three_o book_n against_o cresconius_n speak_v of_o a_o strange_a priest_n and_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o country_n of_o m●slitan_n the_o title_n of_o his_o 137th_o letter_n be_v conceive_v in_o these_o term_n to_o my_o belove_a brethren_n the_o clergy_n th●_n elder_n and_o all_o the_o people_n of_o the_o church_n of_o bonne_fw-fr extr._n tom_n 8._o in_o psal_n 36._o conc._n 2._o p._n 119._o extr._n or_o hippone_v who_o i_o serve_v in_o the_o love_n of_o jesus_n christ_n there_o be_v in_o this_o same_o father_n sermon_n on_o the_o psalm_n a_o synodal_n letter_n of_o the_o cabarsussitan_a council_n which_o speak_v of_o primian_n the_o donatist_n say_v he_o be_v give_v to_o be_v bishop_n to_o the_o people_n of_o carthage_n according_a to_o the_o request_n make_v of_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n by_o letter_n and_o in_o the_o next_o page_n there_o be_v again_o mention_v make_v of_o letter_n and_o deputy_n of_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o nineteenth_o sermon_n on_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o be_v the_o three_o in_o the_o appendix_n of_o the_o 10_o tom_n he_o make_v appear_v wherein_o consist_v one_o part_n of_o the_o duty_n of_o their_o employment_n the_o 100th_o canon_n of_o the_o african_a code_n attribute_v
to_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o the_o year_n 407_o speak_v three_o several_a time_n of_o the_o elder_n at_o nova_n germania_n and_o because_o there_o have_v be_v some_o difference_n betwixt_o this_o church_n and_o maurentius_n its_o bishop_n and_o that_o nevertheless_o the_o elder_n depute_v in_o this_o affair_n to_o the_o synod_n appear_v not_o the_o council_n assign_v to_o maurentius_n the_o judge_n he_o desire_v and_o leave_v to_o the_o choice_n of_o the_o elder_n though_o absent_a the_o nomination_n of_o those_o that_o shall_v be_v needful_a to_o complete_a the_o number_n and_o what_o be_v very_o remarkable_a in_o this_o conjuncture_n be_v that_o these_o elder_n defend_v the_o right_n of_o the_o people_n which_o be_v the_o bishop_n opposite_a party_n who_o complain_v of_o their_o outrage_n and_o calumny_n what_o i_o have_v hitherto_o write_v do_v clear_o show_v that_o when_o the_o deacon_n hillary_n complain_v that_o the_o use_n of_o elder_n be_v abolish_v he_o have_v a_o regad_n to_o italy_n where_o it_o have_v indeed_o happen_v in_o sundry_a place_n though_o the_o same_o practice_n continue_v elsewhere_o as_o i_o have_v justify_v by_o many_o example_n after_o the_o time_n in_o which_o this_o roman_a deacon_n write_v i_o now_o proceed_v on_o far_a and_o do_v say_v this_o custom_n be_v not_o extinct_a in_o france_n and_o sicily_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o six_o century_n i_o say_v first_o of_o all_o in_o sicily_n for_o pope_n gregory_n the_o first_o write_v to_o john_n bishop_n of_o palermo_n 1083_o tom._n 2._o lib._n ●1_n ind._n 6_o ep._n 49._o p._n 1083_o and_o recommend_v two_o thing_n to_o he_o one_o be_v to_o establish_v a_o receiver_n by_o consent_n of_o the_o elder_n and_o clergy_n to_o give_v a_o account_n yearly_a to_o take_v away_o all_o suspicion_n of_o fraud_n the_o other_o be_v not_o to_o give_v easy_a credit_n to_o report_n that_o may_v be_v make_v to_o he_o of_o his_o clergy_n but_o careful_o to_o examine_v the_o truth_n in_o presence_n of_o the_o elder_n of_o his_o church_n i_o say_v in_o the_o second_o place_n this_o same_o practice_n be_v observe_v in_o france_n in_o effect_n gregory_n of_o tours_n have_v transmit_v to_o we_o the_o letter_n of_o a_o assembly_n of_o bishop_n hold_v at_o poitiers_n by_o the_o king_n command_n to_o take_v course_n about_o the_o disorder_n of_o the_o monastery_n of_o st._n radegonda_n 16._o hib._n l._n 1●_n c._n 16._o and_o in_o this_o letter_n the_o abbess_n confess_v among_o other_o thing_n that_o she_o receive_v earnest_a for_o the_o marriage_n of_o her_o niece_n which_o be_v a_o orphan_n that_o she_o receive_v it_o in_o presence_n of_o the_o bishop_n the_o clergy_n and_o the_o elder_n and_o in_o the_o year_n 585._o king_n goutran_v make_v express_a mention_n of_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o distinguish_v from_o the_o clergy_n in_o the_o edict_n which_o he_o address_v to_o the_o bishop_n and_o judge_n of_o his_o kingdom_n tom._n 1._o conc._n gall._n p._n 391._o i_o can_v say_v but_o agobard_fw-mi bishop_n of_o lion_n in_o the_o nine_o century_n might_n design_n these_o same_o elder_n 2._o lib._n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la sacerd_v pag._n 135._o tom._n 2._o when_o complain_v of_o person_n of_o quality_n that_o abuse_v priest_n they_o have_v in_o their_o house_n he_o say_v that_o by_o reason_n of_o these_o domestic_a chaplain_n they_o forsake_v the_o church_n the_o elder_n and_o the_o public_a service_n now_o it_o follow_v i_o must_v treat_v of_o the_o form_n and_o manner_n of_o elect_v our_o deacon_n and_o elder_n the_o establishment_n i_o examine_v distinguish_v the_o place_n where_o the_o discipline_n be_v not_o yet_o settle_v from_o those_o where_o it_o be_v already_o receive_v in_o the_o former_a it_o require_v election_n shall_v be_v make_v by_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o people_n and_o pastor_n in_o the_o other_o it_o appoint_v that_o nomination_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o the_o consistory_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v signify_v to_o the_o people_n to_o have_v either_o their_o consent_n or_o their_o refusal_n because_o their_o establishment_n depend_v on_o the_o like_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o people_n the_o nomination_n make_v in_o the_o consistory_n no_o way_n deprive_v the_o people_n of_o their_o right_n see_v the_o most_o part_n of_o those_o which_o do_v it_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o elder_n and_o deacon_n do_v represent_v the_o people_n and_o be_v invest_v with_o its_o power_n and_o right_n it_o be_v therefore_o of_o the_o people_n either_o mediate_o or_o immediate_o that_o depend_v the_o establish_n of_o elder_n and_o deacon_n among_o we_o and_o herein_o our_o discipline_n have_v religious_o follow_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o holy_a apostle_n who_o refer_v to_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o people_n the_o election_n of_o the_o seven_o deacon_n the_o history_n whereof_o be_v mention_v by_o st._n luke_n in_o the_o 6_o chap._n of_o the_o acts._n and_o it_o be_v not_o only_o in_o regard_n of_o deacon_n the_o apostle_n proceed_v in_o this_o manner_n they_o will_v also_o that_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o jerusalem_n shall_v have_v share_n in_o establish_v mathias_n 1._o act_n 1._o who_o by_o common_a consent_n be_v add_v to_o the_o number_n of_o the_o eleven_o apostle_n and_o when_o they_o ordain_v ordinary_a pastor_n doubtless_o they_o do_v it_o by_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o people_n to_o the_o conduct_n of_o who_o they_o intend_v to_o commit_v they_o which_o example_n the_o succeed_a christian_n imitate_v very_o exact_o as_o we_o have_v make_v appear_v on_o artic._n 4._o of_o the_o first_o chap._n our_o discipline_n do_v not_o therefore_o prescribe_v any_o thing_n as_o to_o what_o regard_v the_o election_n of_o our_o elder_n and_o deacon_n but_o what_o be_v very_o conformable_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o that_o of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n in_o short_a if_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n the_o people_n have_v a_o good_a share_n in_o the_o vocation_n of_o minister_n of_o great_a reason_n have_v they_o in_o establish_v of_o elder_n which_o be_v if_o it_o may_v be_v so_o say_v the_o executor_n of_o their_o will_n and_o the_o dispenser_n of_o their_o right_n and_o if_o our_o minister_n by_o the_o nine_o article_n of_o the_o first_o chapter_n be_v oblige_v to_o sign_n our_o confession_n of_o faith_n and_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n agreeable_a to_o what_o be_v practise_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n it_o can_v be_v think_v strange_a that_o we_o shall_v also_o oblige_v our_o elder_n and_o deacon_n to_o sign_v they_o because_o they_o make_v up_o one_o body_n with_o the_o minister_n of_o each_o church_n and_o do_v partake_v with_o they_o of_o the_o conduct_n of_o the_o same_o flock_n ii_o hence_o forward_o as_o much_o as_o possible_a may_v be_v avoid_v there_o shall_v not_o be_v elect_v for_o elder_n and_o deacon_n of_o the_o church_n those_o which_o have_v wife_n contrary_a to_o the_o true_a religion_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o apostle_n nevertheless_o that_o the_o church_n may_v not_o be_v deprive_v of_o the_o labour_n of_o several_a good_a person_n who_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o ignorance_n of_o past-time_n have_v wife_n of_o a_o contrary_a religion_n they_o shall_v be_v dispense_v withal_o for_o the_o present_a necessity_n provide_v they_o show_v their_o readiness_n in_o instruct_v their_o say_a wife_n and_o in_o desire_v they_o to_o join_v themselves_o to_o the_o church_n conformity_n have_v establish_v as_o we_o have_v do_v the_o first_o article_n this_o have_v no_o difficulty_n in_o it_o for_o st._n paul_n require_v 3._o 1_o tim._n 3._o that_o deacon_n shall_v hold_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o faith_n in_o a_o pure_a conscience_n he_o also_o require_v that_o their_o wife_n be_v faithful_a in_o all_o thing_n and_o by_o consequence_n in_o those_o of_o religion_n and_o piety_n which_o shall_v be_v the_o only_a religion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n both_o in_o husband_n and_o wife_n to_o avoid_v the_o great_a inconvenience_n which_o happen_v by_o diversity_n of_o religion_n which_o tertullian_n represent_v very_o well_o to_o his_o wife_n in_o the_o second_o book_n he_o write_v to_o she_o iii_o the_o office_n of_o elder_n be_v to_o have_v care_n of_o the_o flock_n with_o the_o pastor_n to_o take_v care_n the_o people_n come_v to_o the_o assembly_n and_o that_o every_o one_o frequent_a the_o holy_a congregation_n to_o give_v notice_n of_o misdemeanour_n and_o scandal_n to_o take_v cognizance_n and_o judge_v of_o they_o with_o the_o pastor_n and_o in_o general_a to_o have_v care_n with_o they_o of_o all_o such_o like_a thing_n which_o concern_v the_o order_n support_v and_o government_n of_o the_o church_n so_o that_o in_o each_o church_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o form_n of_o their_o office_n in_o writing_n according_a to_o the_o circumstance_n
it_o in_o due_a form_n and_o with_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o church_n which_o call_v they_o to_o this_o employment_n viii_o neither_o deacon_n nor_o elder_n can_v expect_v superiority_n or_o dominion_n one_o over_o another_o whether_o it_o be_v in_o be_v nominate_v to_o the_o people_n or_o in_o take_v place_n or_o give_v their_o judgement_n or_o any_o thing_n else_o relate_v to_o their_o office_n conformity_n if_o minister_n can_v pretend_v precedency_n one_o of_o another_o as_o we_o have_v full_o show_v on_o art_n 16._o of_o chap._n 1._o it_o will_v not_o be_v reasonable_a that_o elder_n and_o deacon_n shall_v pretend_v any_o sovereignty_n over_o their_o companion_n and_o equal_n ix_o the_o elder_n and_o deacon_n shall_v be_v depose_v for_o the_o same_o cause_n as_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n in_o their_o degree_n it_o be_v condemn_v by_o the_o consistory_n if_o they_o appeal_v they_o shall_v remain_v suspend_v from_o their_o office_n until_o thing_n be_v determine_v by_o a_o provincial_a colloque_n or_o synod_n conformity_n the_o deacon_n and_o elder_n make_v up_o with_o the_o minister_n one_o body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v one_o consistory_n and_o share_v with_o they_o the_o care_n of_o conduct_v the_o flock_n it_o be_v just_a they_o shall_v be_v punish_v with_o the_o same_o pain_n as_o the_o minister_n when_o they_o commit_v the_o same_o offence_n whereof_o we_o have_v treat_v at_o large_a on_o article_n the_o 47._o and_o 49._o of_o chap._n 1._o to_o which_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n x._o the_o restitution_n of_o deacon_n and_o elder_n which_o have_v be_v depose_v shall_v not_o be_v do_v but_o in_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o the_o restore_n of_o depose_a minister_n be_v do_v conformity_n this_o article_n be_v a_o necessary_a consequence_n of_o the_o former_a for_o if_o the_o elder_n and_o deacon_n be_v depose_v for_o the_o same_o reason_n as_o minister_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o restitution_n ought_v to_o be_v make_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n read_v what_o have_v be_v say_v on_o the_o 35._o art_n of_o chap._n 1._o chap._n iu._n of_o the_o deaconry_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o administer_a the_o poor_n money_n by_o the_o deacon_n article_n i._n the_o money_n for_o the_o poor_a shall_v not_o be_v give_v out_o by_o any_o but_o by_o the_o deacon_n by_o the_o advice_n and_o order_n of_o the_o consistory_n conformity_n what_o i_o have_v say_v on_o the_o four_o article_n of_o the_o 3d_o chapter_n suffice_v for_o the_o explain_n of_o this_o and_o to_o establish_v the_o conformity_n of_o our_o discipline_n with_o that_o of_o the_o ancient_a church_n to_o which_o may_v be_v add_v the_o order_n give_v by_o pope_n gregory_n i._o to_o anthemius_n his_o sub-deacon_n that_o he_o shall_v take_v care_n of_o the_o poor_a of_o those_o place_n whither_o he_o send_v he_o ii_o in_o the_o common_a distribution_n it_o be_v requisite_a one_o or_o two_o minister_n shall_v be_v present_a if_o it_o may_v be_v convenient_o but_o especial_o at_o pass_v the_o account_n conformity_n although_o i_o may_v refer_v the_o reader_n for_o the_o explication_n of_o this_o article_n where_o i_o do_v for_o the_o former_a nevertheless_o i_o will_v add_v to_o what_o i_o have_v say_v some_o rule_n which_o be_v not_o incoherent_a to_o the_o subject_a we_o examine_v for_o example_n the_o seven_o and_o 8_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o gangre_n assemble_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 325._o as_o be_v common_o say_v but_o it_o be_v late_a where_o it_o be_v forbid_v to_o dispose_v of_o the_o church-revenue_n without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n or_o of_o he_o he_o have_v appoint_v to_o distribute_v these_o alms._n the_o 24_o and_o 25_o canon_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o antioch_n anno_fw-la dom._n 341._o 146._o tom._n 2._o conc._n gall._n c._n 47._o p._n 146._o order_n the_o bishop_n to_o make_v this_o distribution_n by_o advice_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o deacon_n charlemain_n capitulary_a in_o the_o year_n 789._o renew_v the_o prohibition_n of_o the_o council_n of_o gangre_n iii_o the_o people_n shall_v have_v notice_n of_o pass_v the_o account_n that_o so_o every_o one_o that_o please_v may_v be_v there_o present_a as_o well_o to_o discharge_v those_o who_o disburse_v the_o money_n as_o to_o make_v know_v to_o every_o body_n the_o necessity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o poor_a thereby_o the_o more_o to_o encourage_v people_n to_o contribute_v towards_o their_o relief_n conformity_n st._n austin_n practise_v something_o of_o this_o kind_n as_o our_o discipline_n do_v here_o prescribe_v for_o when_o the_o church-stock_n fail_v he_o give_v notice_n to_o the_o christian_a people_n that_o he_o have_v not_o wherewithal_o to_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o the_o poor_a which_o in_o all_o likelihood_n he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n he_o have_v not_o give_v they_o a_o account_n how_o he_o have_v dispose_v of_o their_o charity_n and_o of_o the_o money_n commit_v to_o his_o trust_n 13._o aug._n tom._n 1._o p._n 13._o and_o which_o he_o consign_v over_o to_o the_o management_n of_o person_n as_o he_o deem_v fit_a for_o the_o purpose_n as_o be_v relate_v at_o large_a by_o possidonius_fw-la in_o the_o 24_o chapter_n of_o his_o life_n iv_o to_o prevent_v the_o inconvenience_n which_o daily_o happen_v by_o attestation_n give_v to_o the_o poor_a every_o church_n shall_v use_v their_o utmost_a endeavour_n to_o maintain_v their_o own_o poor_a and_o in_o case_n any_o one_o for_o his_o necessary_a affair_n be_v force_v to_o travel_v minister_n shall_v in_o their_o consistory_n examine_v if_o the_o cause_n be_v just_a and_o in_o that_o case_n shall_v give_v they_o recommendatory_a letter_n to_o the_o next_o church_n in_o the_o direct_a way_n from_o the_o place_n whither_o they_o go_v express_v the_o name_n age_n stature_n complexion_n the_o place_n whither_o they_o go_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o journey_n and_o the_o assistance_n which_o have_v be_v give_v they_o and_o the_o date_n of_o the_o day_n and_o year_n shall_v not_o be_v omit_v which_o letter_n the_o church_n shall_v keep_v to_o who_o they_o be_v direct_v and_o shall_v give_v they_o other_o to_o the_o next_o church_n and_o all_o attestation_n before_o grant_v shall_v be_v void_a and_o null_a conformity_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o great_a abuse_n be_v commit_v and_o that_o at_o all_o time_n there_o have_v be_v abuse_n commit_v in_o the_o church_n upon_o account_n of_o attestation_n and_o testimony_n grant_v to_o those_o of_o the_o same_o communion_n which_o desire_n to_o go_v from_o one_o place_n to_o another_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v know_v to_o be_v member_n of_o the_o same_o church_n and_o to_o be_v assist_v in_o case_n of_o necessity_n the_o primitive_a christian_n endeavour_v to_o remedy_v these_o inconvenience_n two_o way_n the_o first_o by_o order_v that_o each_o church_n shall_v maintain_v their_o own_o poor_a the_o second_o in_o use_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o caution_n in_o grant_v these_o attestation_n which_o be_v exact_o the_o two_o thing_n prescribe_v by_o our_o discipline_n as_o to_o the_o former_a of_o these_o two_o mean_n 730._o can._n 85_o &_o 101._o tom._n 1._o council_n p._n 730._o the_o four_o council_n of_o carthage_n in_o the_o year_n 398._o declare_v that_o the_o poor_a and_o ancient_a people_n of_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v more_o assist_v than_o any_o other_o and_o that_o young_a widow_n who_o be_v weak_a of_o body_n shall_v be_v maintain_v at_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n to_o which_o they_o belong_v in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o tours_n assemble_v an._n dom._n 567._o the_o 5_o canon_n title_n be_v that_o each_o city_n shall_v maintain_v its_o poor_a and_o run_v in_o these_o term_n that_o each_o city_n do_v furnish_v according_a to_o its_o ability_n provision_n sufficient_a to_o all_o those_o of_o its_o inhabitant_n which_o be_v poor_a and_o incommoded_a and_o that_o as_o well_o the_o curate_n of_o village_n 332._o tom._n 1._o conc._n gall._n p._n 332._o as_o all_o the_o farmer_n which_o dwell_v there_o do_v each_o nourish_v their_o own_o poor_a to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v not_o stray_v and_o wander_v about_o to_o other_o to_n in_o the_o 3d_o council_n of_o the_o same_o place_n assemble_v in_o the_o year_n 813._o there_o be_v several_a direction_n in_o this_o matter_n for_o the_o father_n command_n in_o the_o 11.16_o 36._o canon_n 302._o tom._n 2._o conc._n gal._n pag._n 297_o 298_o 302._o that_o bishop_n shall_v be_v permit_v to_o take_v out_o of_o the_o church_n store_v according_a to_o the_o canonical_a rule_n in_o presence_n of_o the_o priest_n and_o deacon_n what_o shall_v be_v necessary_a to_o maintain_v the_o family_n and_o poor_a of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o tithe_n which_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o particular_a church_n
shall_v be_v distribute_v with_o great_a care_n by_o the_o priest_n according_a to_o the_o bishop_n order_n for_o the_o use_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o poor_a that_o it_o be_v make_v know_v to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o every_o body_n shall_v endeavour_v at_o all_o time_n to_o maintain_v their_o family_n and_o the_o poor_a because_o it_o be_v a_o wicked_a and_o impious_a thing_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n that_o those_o which_o enjoy_v great_a riches_n and_o that_o abound_v with_o all_o manner_n of_o wealth_n shall_v not_o help_v and_o assist_v those_o which_o be_v in_o want_n and_o misery_n it_o be_v to_o what_o also_o amount_v the_o 14_o canon_n of_o the_o 6_o council_n of_o arles_n in_o the_o same_o year_n that_o each_o have_v care_n of_o their_o poor_a in_o time_n of_o famine_n 271._o ib._n p._n 271._o or_o any_o other_o necessity_n because_o it_o be_v write_v bless_a be_v the_o merciful_a for_o they_o shall_v obtain_v mercy_n the_o emperor_n charlemagne_n command_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o capitulary_n 11._o pag_n 324._o c._n 11._o chap._n 121_o 128_o 132._o and_o in_o another_o capitulary_a he_o make_v after_o certain_a synod_n he_o assemble_v in_o the_o year_n 813._o and_o which_o be_v in_o sirmond_n 2d_o tome_n of_o french_a council_n and_o i_o make_v no_o doubt_n but_o this_o holy_a discipline_n be_v religious_o practise_v in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n when_o people_n be_v full_a of_o charity_n when_o there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o compel_v they_o to_o the_o exercise_n of_o it_o by_o authority_n of_o canon_n and_o humane_a law_n i_o proceed_v to_o the_o 2d_o mean_n which_o i_o propose_v and_o which_o regard_v the_o attestation_n and_o certificate_n which_o shall_v not_o be_v grant_v but_o with_o much_o caution_n and_o circumspection_n to_o the_o end_n those_o to_o who_o they_o be_v give_v shall_v not_o abuse_v they_o in_o the_o place_n whither_o they_o go_v or_o by_o the_o which_o they_o pass_v these_o kind_n of_o certificate_n be_v very_o frequent_a in_o the_o primitive_a church_n where_o they_o be_v call_v letter_n to_o which_o be_v give_v several_a denomination_n according_a to_o the_o several_a cause_n under_o which_o they_o be_v consider_v in_o regard_n of_o those_o which_o write_v they_o they_o be_v call_v ecclesiastic_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o relation_n which_o be_v betwixt_o those_o which_o write_v they_o and_o which_o receive_v they_o they_o have_v the_o name_n of_o communicatory_a or_o pacisick_n moreover_o they_o be_v call_v canonical_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o order_n which_o render_v they_o necessary_a and_o peculiar_a letter_n because_o they_o be_v write_v in_o certain_a term_n and_o with_o distinct_a mark_n as_o they_o bear_v if_o it_o may_v be_v so_o say_v as_o have_v the_o very_a token_n of_o christian_a charity_n but_o beside_o all_o these_o respect_n there_o be_v that_o of_o the_o person_n in_o who_o favour_n these_o letter_n be_v write_v and_o then_o they_o be_v term_v in_o general_a letter_n of_o recommendation_n of_o which_o st._n paul_n make_v mention_n in_o the_o 3d_o chap._n of_o the_o 2d_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n nevertheless_o this_o general_a term_n have_v not_o hinder_v that_o in_o this_o last_o regard_n three_o sort_n have_v not_o sometime_o be_v make_v in_o the_o first_o place_n there_o be_v litterae_fw-la dimissoriae_fw-la letter_n of_o licence_n by_o virtue_n of_o which_o ecclesiastic_n of_o one_o church_n be_v admit_v to_o do_v the_o function_n of_o their_o call_v in_o another_o and_o can_v even_o be_v receive_v into_o their_o clergy_n 327._o tom._n 5._o council_n p._n 327._o and_o be_v member_n of_o it_o provide_v they_o be_v absolute_o dimissoriae_fw-la as_o appear_v by_o the_o 17_o canon_n of_o the_o 6_o ecumenical_a council_n second_o litterae_fw-la commendatiae_fw-la letter_n of_o recommendation_n which_o be_v give_v to_o strange_a and_o unknown_a clerk_n or_o to_o layman_n which_o be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n to_o the_o end_n to_o recommend_v they_o as_o believer_n and_o as_o be_v out_o of_o the_o censure_n of_o the_o church_n the_o 13_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n speak_v of_o the_o former_a where_o it_o forbid_v to_o suffer_v strange_a and_o unknown_a clerk_n to_o say_v service_n in_o another_o church_n without_o have_v letter_n of_o recommendation_n from_o their_o bishop_n and_o zonaras_n a_o famous_a greek_a canonist_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o latter_a on_o the_o 11_o canon_n of_o the_o same_o council_n and_o on_o the_o 12_o and_o 13_o canon_n of_o those_o attribute_v to_o the_o apostle_n 94._o cap._n 9_o litt._n a._n p._n 94._o the_o friar_n blastares_n make_v almost_o the_o same_o remark_n in_o his_o alphabetical_a collection_n of_o canon_n to_o conclude_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n require_v that_o letter_n pacifick_n only_o shall_v be_v give_v to_o the_o poor_a see_v here_o the_o manner_n it_o explain_v itself_o in_o the_o 11_o canon_n we_o appoint_v that_o all_o the_o poor_a and_o those_o which_o have_v need_v of_o assistance_n have_v in_o their_o journey_n along_o with_o they_o ecclesiastical_a letter_n only_a pacifick_n and_o not_o letter_n of_o recommendation_n because_o letter_n of_o recommendation_n shall_v not_o be_v give_v but_o to_o those_o which_o be_v some_o way_n suspect_v yet_o i_o observe_v this_o distinction_n have_v always_o be_v keep_v and_o that_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n in_o the_o seven_o canon_n forbid_v to_o receive_v a_o stranger_n without_o have_v the_o pacifick_n letter_n which_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n accord_v to_o the_o poor_a and_o indigent_a gregory_n of_o nazianzen_n express_v himself_o thereupon_o in_o a_o manner_n which_o sufficient_o show_v they_o be_v letter_n of_o recommendation_n as_o the_o interpreter_n have_v translate_v it_o in_o short_a in_o his_o 3d_o oration_n which_o be_v the_o one_a against_o julian_n the_o apostate_n he_o say_v that_o among_o many_o thing_n which_o that_o cowardly_a fugitive_n from_o the_o truth_n endeavour_v to_o introduce_v the_o use_n and_o practice_v of_o among_o the_o gentile_n in_o imitation_n of_o christian_n 102._o tom._n 1._o p._n 102._o he_o desire_v above_o all_o thing_n to_o establish_v the_o use_n of_o those_o letter_n of_o recommendation_n by_o the_o which_o say_v this_o ancient_a doctor_n we_o send_v from_o one_o country_n to_o another_o those_o which_o be_v poor_a and_o in_o necessity_n zozoman_n in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n write_v the_o same_o thing_n of_o this_o emperor_n and_o say_v that_o by_o virtue_n of_o these_o letter_n by_o which_o christian_n recommend_v the_o stranger_n of_o their_o communion_n they_o be_v lodge_v and_o care_n be_v take_v of_o they_o where_o ever_o they_o go_v and_o in_o what_o country_n soever_o they_o come_v as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v friend_n and_o a_o long_a while_n know_v and_o acquaint_v and_o that_o all_o this_o be_v do_v on_o account_n of_o the_o character_n the_o letter_n give_v of_o they_o and_o which_o be_v as_o it_o be_v the_o mark_n and_o symbol_n of_o their_o profession_n and_o as_o i_o conceive_v it_o be_v wat_fw-mi tertullian_n call_v the_o contesseration_n of_o hospitality_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o mark_n and_o sign_n at_o the_o sight_n whereof_o the_o right_a of_o hospitality_n be_v use_v towards_o those_o which_o show_v it_o and_o it_o be_v probable_a lucian_n have_v a_o regard_n to_o this_o custom_n when_o speak_v of_o a_o stranger_n pereg._n dial._n de_fw-fr pereg._n he_o say_v that_o in_o travel_v he_o find_v plentiful_a assistance_n among_o the_o christian_n whereby_o he_o be_v abundant_o supply_v with_o all_o thing_n there_o be_v yet_o something_o far_o to_o be_v consider_v in_o this_o matter_n to_o wit_n that_o christian_n be_v so_o circumspect_a in_o grant_v these_o letter_n of_o recommendation_n that_o they_o examine_v those_o which_o have_v they_o and_o oblige_v they_o to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o their_o faith_n to_o avoid_v all_o fraud_n and_o surprise_n supra_fw-la ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la the_o 58th_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o eliberi_n or_o eluira_n in_o spain_n in_o the_o year_n 305._o order_n it_o so_o the_o 33d_o of_o the_o apostle_n be_v no_o less_o express_v without_o insist_v on_o the_o interpretation_n of_o balsamon_n zonoras_n and_o aristenus_n greek_a canonist_n which_o have_v understand_v it_o in_o this_o sense_n i_o can_v tell_v but_o lucian_n do_v again_o allude_v to_o this_o practice_n of_o christian_n when_o he_o say_v that_o they_o receive_v certain_a dogma_n which_o he_o mention_n without_o exact_o search_v the_o truth_n but_o i_o know_v very_o well_o that_o we_o on_o this_o occasion_n do_v the_o same_o as_o the_o primitive_a christian_n do_v not_o only_o through_o custom_n but_o also_o by_o order_n of_o our_o national_a synod_n that_o of_o charanton_n the_o establishment_n whereof_o be_v cite_v in_o the_o article_n
we_o examine_v that_o of_o charanton_n i_o say_v in_o the_o year_n 1623._o enjoin_v exact_o to_o examine_v as_o well_o the_o attestation_n as_o those_o which_o have_v they_o to_o have_v from_o their_o own_o mouth_n testimony_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o instruction_n as_o for_o the_o order_n our_o discipline_n prescribe_v to_o give_v and_o renew_v from_o church_n to_o church_n the_o recommendatory_a letter_n it_o be_v the_o same_o in_o substance_n of_o that_o establish_a by_o the_o synod_n of_o sardis_n an._n dom._n 347._o in_o the_o 8_o 9_o 10_o and_o 11._o canon_n and_o particular_o in_o the_o last_o where_o it_o appoint_v bishop_n which_o be_v on_o the_o way_n to_o examine_v these_o letter_n of_o recommendation_n and_o to_o ask_v of_o those_o which_o have_v they_o the_o cause_n and_o reason_n of_o their_o travel_v or_o to_o subscribe_v their_o letter_n if_o they_o be_v just_a and_o to_o refuse_v they_o communion_n if_o they_o have_v fraudulent_o get_v they_o chap._n v._o of_o consistory_n article_n i._n in_o each_o church_n there_o shall_v be_v a_o consistory_n compose_v of_o person_n which_o shall_v have_v the_o conduct_n of_o it_o to_o wit_n of_o pastor_n and_o elder_n and_o the_o minister_n in_o this_o company_n be_v to_o preside_v as_o also_o in_o all_o other_o ecclesiastical_a assembly_n conformity_n from_o the_o very_a first_o establish_n of_o christian_a church_n there_o be_v in_o each_o of_o they_o a_o certain_a number_n of_o person_n to_o who_o the_o government_n of_o it_o be_v commit_v and_o who_o be_v distinguish_v from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o people_n by_o the_o office_n which_o they_o exercise_v and_o by_o the_o choice_n which_o have_v be_v make_v of_o they_o for_o supervise_v the_o whole_a flock_n and_o it_o be_v what_o we_o call_v consistory_n origen_n call_v it_o the_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n and_o make_v it_o parallel_n with_o the_o politic_a senate_n of_o each_o city_n to_o show_v that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n very_o much_o surpass_v the_o other_o be_v compose_v of_o person_n of_o more_o virtue_n and_o knowledge_n than_o those_o which_o be_v member_n of_o politic_a senate_n in_o city_n the_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n or_o consistory_n be_v compose_v among_o we_o of_o minister_n and_o elder_n and_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v think_v strange_a that_o we_o join_v elder_n with_o the_o minister_n after_o all_o we_o have_v say_v on_o the_o 3d_o chapter_n particular_o on_o the_o one_a article_n where_o we_o have_v at_o large_a prove_v that_o the_o elder_n have_v have_v share_n for_o several_a century_n in_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o they_o in_o all_o likelihood_n will_v have_v still_o continue_v if_o the_o ambition_n of_o bishop_n and_o their_o clergy_n have_v not_o insensible_o abolish_v this_o laudable_a practice_n the_o deacon_n hillary_n as_o have_v be_v show_v complain_v of_o it_o in_o his_o time_n but_o although_o the_o elder_n partake_v with_o the_o minister_n in_o govern_v the_o flock_n yet_o the_o right_n of_o precedency_n appertain_v to_o the_o minister_n therefore_o in_o these_o testimony_n we_o have_v allege_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n have_v have_v great_a advantage_n in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o lay-elders_a like_o we_o they_o be_v for_o the_o most_o part_n name_v after_o the_o clergy_n ii_o as_o for_o deacon_n see_v the_o church_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o the_o time_n have_v to_o this_o day_n happy_o employ_v they_o in_o govern_v the_o church_n as_o exercise_v also_o the_o office_n of_o elder_n those_o which_o hereafter_o shall_v choose_v such_o or_o continue_v they_o they_o shall_v with_o the_o pastor_n and_o elder_n bear_v a_o part_n in_o the_o govern_n the_o church_n and_o therefore_o shall_v frequent_o be_v with_o they_o in_o the_o consistory_n yea_o even_o at_o the_o colloques_fw-la and_o synod_n if_o they_o be_v thither_o send_v by_o the_o consistory_n conformity_n the_o care_n of_o the_o poor_a make_v one_o of_o the_o most_o considerable_a part_n of_o the_o church-government_n it_o be_v with_o great_a reason_n we_o therein_o admit_v the_o deacon_n because_o they_o be_v proper_o institute_v to_o attend_v on_o this_o thing_n as_o have_v be_v above_o prove_v at_o large_a iii_o in_o place_n where_o the_o exercise_n of_o religion_n be_v not_o settle_v christian_n shall_v be_v exhort_v by_o the_o colloques_fw-la to_o have_v elder_n and_o deacon_n and_o to_o follow_v the_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n and_o at_o the_o say_v colloques_fw-la they_o shall_v be_v inform_v to_o what_o church_n to_o join_v themselves_o for_o their_o convenience_n and_o exercise_n of_o their_o ministry_n from_o whence_o also_o they_o may_v not_o depart_v without_o communicate_v it_o also_o to_o the_o say_v colloques_fw-la conformity_n in_o the_o place_n where_o there_o be_v no_o public_a exercise_n of_o our_o religion_n although_o there_o be_v a_o considerable_a number_n of_o family_n which_o profess_v it_o care_n must_v be_v take_v they_o do_v not_o live_v without_o discipline_n and_o to_o this_o purpose_n there_o must_v be_v establish_v among_o they_o deacon_n and_o elder_n to_o take_v care_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o to_o watch_v over_o the_o life_n and_o conversation_n of_o private_a person_n whereof_o they_o shall_v give_v account_n at_o the_o church-consistory_n to_o the_o which_o they_o shall_v be_v join_v for_o the_o public_a exercise_n of_o piety_n and_o the_o service_n of_o god_n and_o there_o be_v no_o question_n to_o be_v make_v but_o something_o of_o this_o nature_n be_v do_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n 98._o apolog._n p._n 98._o for_o instance_n in_o the_o day_n of_o st._n justin_n martyr_n that_o they_o assemble_v from_o the_o country_n and_o city_n unto_o one_o place_n which_o show_v plain_o these_o assembly_n be_v not_o make_v every_o where_o although_o according_a to_o all_o appearance_n there_o be_v in_o all_o place_n one_o and_o the_o same_o order_n for_o the_o conduct_n of_o christian_n to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v do_v nothing_o unworthy_a the_o holiness_n of_o their_o profession_n iv_o there_o shall_v be_v but_o one_o consistory_n in_o each_o church_n and_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v permit_v to_o establish_v other_o council_n for_o any_o church-business_n whatever_o if_o in_o any_o church_n there_o shall_v any_o other_o council_n be_v establish_v different_a from_o the_o consistory_n it_o shall_v forthwith_o be_v suppress_v nevertheless_o the_o consistory_n can_v sometime_o call_v to_o its_o aid_n such_o of_o the_o church_n as_o shall_v be_v think_v convenient_a when_o occasion_n require_v and_o that_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n be_v treat_v of_o only_a in_o the_o place_n where_o the_o consistory_n do_v assemble_v conformity_n there_o be_v not_o ancient_o in_o each_o christian_a church_n any_o more_o than_o one_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v by_o origen_n and_o this_o senate_n be_v not_o proper_o any_o thing_n else_o but_o what_o we_o call_v consistory_n which_o be_v a_o company_n of_o person_n which_o the_o church_n do_v invest_v with_o her_o right_n and_o power_n to_o govern_v the_o flock_n v._o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o consistory_n to_o admit_v of_o father_n and_o son_n or_o of_o two_o brother_n in_o the_o same_o consistory_n unless_o there_o be_v some_o other_o reason_n to_o the_o contrary_a of_o which_o the_o colloque_n or_o provincial_a synod_n shall_v take_v cognizance_n conformity_n the_o church_n be_v the_o spouse_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o by_o consequence_n the_o mistress_n of_o all_o the_o power_n and_o of_o all_o the_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n which_o reside_v in_o she_o as_o in_o its_o fountain_n and_o in_o the_o consistory_n as_o in_o society_n which_o she_o establish_v for_o the_o use_n and_o exercise_v of_o this_o power_n she_o may_v then_o have_v authorize_v the_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n and_o the_o consistory_n to_o admit_v into_o its_o body_n the_o father_n and_o son_n or_o two_o brother_n provide_v they_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o church_n which_o have_v in_o general_n give_v this_o power_n to_o the_o consistory_n vi_o it_o be_v also_o refer_v to_o the_o discretion_n of_o consistory_n to_o call_v unto_o they_o young_a student_n although_o they_o have_v no_o office_n in_o the_o church_n but_o not_o without_o weighty_a cause_n and_o consideration_n and_o when_o their_o wisdom_n be_v know_v the_o say_a student_n shall_v be_v there_o present_a not_o to_o have_v any_o voice_n in_o what_o affair_n shall_v be_v debate_v but_o that_o by_o their_o presence_n there_o they_o may_v the_o soon_o become_v fit_a and_o proper_a to_o govern_v the_o church_n when_o it_o shall_v please_v god_n lawful_o to_o call_v they_o thereunto_o nevertheless_o it_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o pastor_n free_a choice_n to_o demand_v their_o judgement_n to_o make_v trial_n of_o their_o ability_n which_o shall_v be_v do_v with_o great_a prudence_n and_o caution_n and_o promise_v not_o to_o make_v
we_o do_v they_o inform_v sinner_n of_o their_o duty_n they_o charitable_o represent_v to_o they_o their_o fault_n they_o apply_v to_o they_o fit_a censure_n they_o deprive_v they_o of_o participate_v of_o the_o divine_a mystery_n they_o cause_v they_o to_o pass_v by_o certain_a degree_n of_o penance_n proportion_v to_o the_o greatness_n of_o their_o fault_n and_o when_o the_o crime_n be_v heinous_a and_o the_o obstinacy_n stout_a and_o resolute_a they_o excommunicate_v they_o in_o separate_v they_o from_o the_o society_n of_o the_o faithful_a as_o person_n who_o have_v make_v themselves_o unworthy_a of_o live_v within_o the_o pale_a of_o the_o church_n tertullian_n have_v in_o few_o word_n comprise_v all_o this_o proceed_n which_o i_o have_v now_o touch_v when_o describe_v the_o assembly_n of_o his_o time_n 39_o apolog._n cap._n 39_o he_o observe_v that_o therein_o be_v make_v exhortation_n reprehension_n and_o censure_n that_o therein_o be_v inflict_v punishment_n that_o after_o have_v mature_o weigh_v all_o thing_n judgement_n be_v give_v be_v persuade_v god_n see_v they_o and_o it_o be_v say_v he_o a_o great_a resemblance_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n if_o any_o one_o for_o his_o sin_n be_v deprive_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o prayer_n from_o the_o assembly_n and_o from_o all_o holy_a intercourse_n which_o will_v also_o appear_v yet_o more_o clear_o if_o one_o consider_v that_o peter_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o martyr_n of_o jesus_n christ_n under_o dioclesian_n have_v express_v the_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o communion_n 8._o epist_n canon_n cap._n 8._o by_o communicate_v in_o all_o thing_n in_o prayer_n in_o participate_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o in_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o word_n origen_n have_v already_o speak_v of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a synod_n and_o of_o those_o which_o have_v the_o care_n to_o watch_v over_o the_o conduct_n of_o christian_n to_o encourage_v the_o one_o to_o do_v well_o and_o to_o exclude_v from_o the_o holy_a assembly_n those_o which_o live_v ill_o 3._o chap._n 3._o art_n 3._o upon_o which_o it_o may_v be_v note_v there_o be_v two_o sort_n of_o excommunication_n among_o the_o primitive_a christian_n the_o former_a which_o be_v most_o frequent_a consist_v in_o the_o be_v debar_v from_o the_o sacrament_n to_o which_o sinner_n can_v not_o approach_v until_o after_o have_v do_v penance_n for_o their_o sin_n as_o it_o happen_v to_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n as_o be_v relate_v by_o zozoman_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 25._o for_o so_o it_o be_v that_o all_o public_a sin_n be_v punish_v the_o other_o be_v a_o total_a exclusion_n from_o the_o society_n of_o believer_n which_o tertullian_n express_v by_o omni_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la tecto_fw-la submovere_fw-la xvi_o suspension_n from_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n shall_v be_v use_v the_o more_o effectual_o to_o humble_a sinner_n and_o make_v they_o the_o more_o true_o sensible_a of_o their_o offence_n this_o suspension_n nor_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v declare_v to_o the_o people_n neither_o also_o the_o restitution_n of_o the_o sinner_n unless_o it_o be_v in_o case_n they_o be_v heretic_n despiser_n of_o god_n rebel_n to_o the_o consistory_n traitor_n to_o the_o church_n as_o also_o such_o as_o shall_v be_v guilty_a of_o crime_n worthy_a of_o corporal_a punishment_n and_o that_o bring_v great_a scandal_n on_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o also_o those_o who_o against_o remonstrance_n to_o they_o make_v do_v marry_v to_o papist_n father_n and_o mother_n which_o do_v so_o marry_v their_o child_n tutor_n curator_n and_o other_o which_o supply_v the_o place_n of_o father_n and_o mother_n and_o do_v so_o marry_v their_o pupil_n together_o with_o those_o which_o thither_o carry_v they_o to_o be_v baptise_a or_o do_v present_v other_o to_o be_v baptise_a it_o be_v necessary_a that_o all_o such_o person_n although_o there_o may_v be_v perceive_v in_o they_o some_o beginning_n of_o repentance_n shall_v speedy_o be_v deprive_v for_o some_o time_n from_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o the_o suspension_n shall_v be_v declare_v to_o all_o the_o people_n as_o well_o that_o they_o may_v be_v the_o more_o humble_v and_o induce_v to_o repentance_n as_o to_o discharge_v the_o church_n from_o all_o blame_n and_o reproach_n and_o also_o to_o give_v terror_n to_o other_o and_o make_v they_o tremble_v by_o this_o example_n to_o avoid_v the_o like_a sin_n conformity_n there_o have_v ever_o in_o the_o church_n a_o distinction_n be_v make_v betwixt_o secret_a sin_n and_o those_o sin_n which_o have_v be_v public_a and_o scandalous_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o former_a the_o church_n never_o exercise_v any_o authority_n for_o to_o the_o end_n she_o may_v act_v against_o sinner_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o they_o confess_v their_o sin_n or_o that_o they_o may_v be_v convince_v of_o they_o but_o because_o it_o may_v so_o happen_v that_o the_o sin_n of_o a_o private_a person_n may_v be_v know_v to_o some_o of_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o he_o may_v not_o have_v scandalize_v the_o public_a 10._o orig._n hom._n 7._o in_o jos_n pa._n 185._o l._n 1._o aug._n ser._n 16._o de_fw-fr verb._n do._n c._n 7_o tom._n 10._o in_o this_o case_n he_o may_v be_v censure_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a senate_n and_o if_o his_o crime_n deserve_v it_o may_v declare_v to_o he_o he_o be_v not_o in_o a_o state_n fit_a for_o some_o time_n to_o approach_v to_o the_o holy_a communion_n which_o be_v just_a what_o be_v practise_v by_o we_o but_o when_o the_o sin_n be_v public_a and_o scandalous_a we_o public_o suspend_v from_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n those_o which_o commit_v they_o and_o leave_v they_o in_o this_o state_n until_o such_o time_n that_o have_v give_v sufficient_a mark_n of_o sincere_a repentance_n we_o receive_v they_o into_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o church_n by_o a_o public_a acknowledgement_n of_o their_o offence_n which_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o do_v in_o presence_n of_o all_o the_o people_n and_o herein_o we_o follow_v the_o example_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n 2._o hom._n 7._o in_o jos_n &_o 21._o &_o 2._o in_o jud._n tom._n 1._o &_o in_o mat_n trac_n 35._o to._n 2._o which_o only_o subject_v these_o sort_n of_o sin_n to_o the_o canon_n of_o public_a penance_n it_o be_v the_o constant_a doctrine_n of_o origen_n as_o appear_v in_o divers_a part_n of_o his_o write_n where_o he_o formal_o declare_v that_o there_o be_v only_a great_a sin_n scandalous_a sin_n which_o shall_v be_v public_o punish_v and_o also_o he_o will_v have_v it_o do_v with_o a_o spirit_n of_o charity_n and_o according_a to_o the_o gospel_n precept_n for_o so_o it_o be_v he_o explain_v himself_o in_o his_o three_o homily_n on_o leviticus_n gregory_n of_o nysse_n in_o his_o canonical_a letter_n to_o letoius_n 6._o can._n 5_o &_o 6._o speak_v not_o otherwise_o and_o though_o he_o express_v himself_o in_o different_a term_n from_o origen_n yet_o he_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v only_o public_a sin_n which_o shall_v pass_v by_o the_o degree_n of_o public_a penance_n according_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o father_n st._n austin_n be_v no_o less_o clear_a herein_o than_o the_o two_o other_o 50._o hom._n 50._o he_o teach_v in_o the_o book_n of_o fifty_o homily_n which_o be_v in_o the_o ten_o tome_n that_o when_o the_o sin_n be_v great_a and_z gives_z scandal_n to_o other_o the_o sinner_n ought_v to_o do_v penance_n in_o presence_n of_o all_o the_o congregation_n especial_o if_o the_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n require_v it_o and_o in_o another_o of_o these_o same_o homily_n that_o be_v in_o the_o 27_o he_o will_v have_v to_o pass_v by_o this_o rude_a and_o laborious_a penance_n murderer_n 7._o tom._n 10._o cap._n 7._o adulterer_n and_o sacrilegious_a person_n and_o in_o the_o sixteenth_o sermon_n on_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n he_o say_v that_o the_o sin_n which_o be_v commit_v public_o must_v be_v reprove_v public_o and_o private_o those_o which_o be_v commit_v more_o secret_o i_o may_v add_v to_o these_o testimony_n what_o he_o write_v in_o the_o epistle_n fifty_o four_o and_o hundred_o eight_o which_o be_v in_o the_o second_o tome_n of_o his_o work_n and_o in_o the_o 65th_o chap._n of_o his_o manual_a to_o laurence_n the_o author_n of_o the_o question_n on_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n 3._o tom._n 3._o which_o be_v in_o the_o appendix_n of_o the_o four_o tome_n which_o show_v he_o be_v in_o this_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n as_o the_o true_a st._n austin_n be_v in_o explain_v the_o 102._o question_n caesarius_n bishop_n of_o arles_n patr._n tom._n 2._o bibl._n patr._n a_o writer_n of_o the_o six_o century_n in_o the_o first_o and_o eight_o of_o his_o homily_n pope_n gregory_n the_o first_o in_o the_o 31._o letter_n of_o the_o 12_o book_n isidore_z bishop_n of_o
sevil_n about_o the_o same_o time_n in_o his_o second_o book_n of_o sentence_n chap._n 20._o and_o in_o the_o three_o ch._n 46._o these_o three_o have_v follow_v the_o step_n of_o other_o it_o be_v with_o regard_n hereunto_o that_o the_o three_o council_n of_o carthage_n enjoin_v bishop_n in_o the_o four_o century_n 711._o can._n 31._o tom._n 1._o conc_fw-fr pag._n 711._o to_o prescribe_v to_o penitent_n according_a to_o the_o nature_n of_o sin_n the_o time_n of_o penance_n the_o jesuit_n petau_n in_o the_o 2_o 3_o and_o 10_o chap._n of_o his_o 6_o book_n of_o public_a penance_n acknowledge_v against_o mr._n arnauld_n that_o it_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n where_o only_o heinous_a and_o scandalous_a crime_n be_v public_o reprove_v he_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o his_o observation_n on_o st._n epiphamus_n where_o he_o have_v a_o dissertation_n on_o the_o ancient_a manner_n of_o penance_n 238._o tom_n 2._o pag._n 238._o on_o occasion_n of_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o novatian_o which_o be_v the_o 59th_o in_o order_n father_n sirmond_n of_o the_o same_o society_n speak_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o public_a penance_n chap._n 2._o &_o 4._o in_o the_o main_a all_o i_o have_v say_v regard_v the_o usual_a excommunication_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n of_o which_o i_o have_v treat_v in_o the_o precedent_a article_n and_o by_o the_o law_n whereof_o scandalous_a sinner_n be_v not_o admit_v to_o the_o holy_a table_n until_o they_o have_v pass_v through_o all_o the_o degree_n of_o penance_n which_o be_v then_o in_o use_n xvii_o if_o by_o such_o suspension_n the_o sinner_n be_v not_o reclaim_v but_o continue_v obstinate_a and_o impenitent_a after_o long_a expectation_n and_o that_o they_o have_v be_v several_a time_n admonish_v and_o entreat_v proceed_v shall_v be_v make_v against_o they_o by_o give_v public_a admonition_n to_o the_o people_n three_o several_a sunday_n be_v name_v if_o need_v be_v by_o the_o minister_n to_o make_v they_o more_o ashamed_a every_o body_n advertise_v to_o pray_v to_o god_n for_o they_o and_o endeavour_v by_o all_o mean_n to_o bring_v they_o home_o by_o repentance_n of_o their_o sin_n to_o prevent_v retrenchment_n and_o excommunication_n to_o which_o one_o can_v proceed_v without_o sorrow_n but_o if_o for_o all_o this_o they_o will_v not_o repent_v but_o persevere_v in_o their_o obstinacy_n and_o impenitence_n on_o the_o four_o sunday_n it_o shall_v be_v public_o say_v by_o the_o pastor_n that_o it_o be_v declare_v to_o the_o say_v scandalous_a and_o obstinate_a person_n in_o name_v they_o by_o their_o name_n that_o they_o be_v not_o any_o long_o acknowledge_v as_o member_n of_o the_o church_n cut_v they_o off_o from_o it_o in_o the_o name_n and_o authority_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o of_o his_o church_n and_o the_o form_n of_o the_o excommunication_n shall_v be_v as_o follow_v the_o form_n of_o the_o excommunication_n brethren_n see_v here_o the_o four_o time_n that_o we_o declare_v unto_o you_o that_o n._n for_o have_v commit_v several_a crime_n and_o for_o have_v scandalize_v the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o for_o show_v himself_o impenitent_a and_o a_o contemner_n of_o all_o admonition_n which_o have_v be_v make_v unto_o he_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n have_v be_v suspend_v from_o the_o holy_a supper_n of_o the_o lord_n the_o which_o suspension_n and_o cause_n of_o it_o have_v be_v signify_v to_o you_o to_o the_o end_n you_o may_v join_v your_o prayer_n with_o we_o that_o it_o may_v please_v god_n to_o soften_v the_o hardness_n of_o his_o heart_n and_o give_v he_o true_a repentance_n draw_v he_o from_o the_o way_n of_o perdition_n but_o have_v so_o long_a time_n wait_v for_o he_o pray_v and_o exhort_v and_o conjure_v he_o to_o be_v convert_v to_o god_n and_o endeavour_v all_o mean_n to_o bring_v he_o to_o repentance_n nevertheless_o persevere_fw-la in_o his_o impenitence_n and_o with_o a_o incor_n rigible_a obstinacy_n rebel_n against_o god_n and_o trample_v under_o foot_n his_o holy_a word_n and_o the_o order_n he_o have_v establish_v in_o his_o church_n and_o glory_v in_o his_o sin_n be_v cause_n that_o the_o church_n for_o so_o long_a time_n be_v disturb_v and_o the_o name_n of_o god_n blaspheme_v we_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n who_o god_n have_v arm_v with_o spiritual_a weapon_n powerful_a through_o god_n to_o the_o pull_v down_o of_o strong_a hold_n which_o hold_v out_o in_o opposition_n against_o he_o to_o who_o the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n have_v give_v power_n to_o bind_v and_o loose_v on_o earth_n declare_v that_o whatsoever_o we_o bound_v on_o earth_n shall_v be_v bind_v in_o heaven_n to_o the_o end_n to_o purify_v the_o house_n of_o god_n and_o free_a his_o church_n from_o scandal_n and_o in_o pronounce_v anathema_n against_o the_o wicked_a shall_v glorify_v the_o name_n of_o god_n in_o the_o name_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n by_o the_o advice_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o pastor_n and_o elder_n assemble_v in_o colloque_n and_o of_o the_o consistory_n of_o this_o church_n we_o have_v retrench_v and_o do_v retrench_v the_o say_v n._n from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n we_o excommunicate_v and_o remove_v he_o from_o the_o society_n of_o the_o faithful_a that_o he_o may_v be_v to_o you_o as_o a_o heathen_a and_o unbeliever_n and_o among_o true_a christian_n he_o may_v be_v anathema_n and_o execrate_v let_v his_o company_n be_v esteem_v contagious_a and_o let_v his_o example_n fill_v your_o soul_n with_o fear_n and_o make_v you_o tremble_v under_o the_o mighty_a hand_n of_o god_n see_v it_o be_v a_o fearful_a thing_n to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o live_a god_n which_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n the_o son_n of_o god_n will_v ratify_v and_o make_v it_o efficacious_a until_o that_o the_o sinner_n ashamed_a and_o humble_v in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n give_v he_o glory_n by_o his_o eonversion_n and_o be_v free_v from_o these_o chain_n of_o satan_n where_o with_o he_o be_v bind_v he_o bewail_v his_o sin_n with_o tear_n of_o repentance_n belove_a brethren_n pray_v unto_o god_n that_o he_o will_v have_v pity_n on_o this_o poor_a sinner_n and_o that_o this_o fearful_a judgement_n the_o which_o with_o great_a sorrow_n and_o sadness_n of_o heart_n we_o pronounce_v against_o he_o in_o the_o name_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n may_v serve_v to_o humble_a and_o turn_v into_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n a_o soul_n which_o be_v stray_v from_o it_o amen_n curse_a be_v every_o one_o that_o do_v the_o work_n of_o the_o lord_n negligent_o if_o there_o be_v any_o one_o that_o love_v not_o the_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n let_v he_o be_v anathema_n maranatha_n amen_n conformity_n christian_n be_v not_o the_o first_o which_o inflict_v the_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n on_o rebellious_a and_o scandalous_a sinner_n pagan_n and_o jew_n have_v practise_v the_o same_o thing_n i_o say_v pagan_n caesar_n inform_v we_o in_o his_o commentary_n that_o the_o druid_n in_o gaul_n excommunicate_v those_o which_o despise_v their_o decree_n and_o their_o constitution_n 135._o lib._n 6._o pag._n 134_o 135._o forbid_v they_o to_o approach_v near_o the_o sacrifice_n after_o which_o they_o be_v look_v upon_o as_o impious_a and_o obstinate_a every_o one_o fly_v from_o their_o company_n and_o conversation_n fear_v to_o receive_v some_o harm_n by_o infection_n and_o this_o punishment_n which_o be_v the_o great_a of_o all_o those_o they_o do_v inflict_v put_v into_o such_o a_o condition_n those_o which_o be_v subject_v to_o it_o that_o they_o be_v refuse_v the_o benefit_n of_o the_o law_n although_o they_o earnest_o desire_v it_o and_o it_o also_o deprive_v they_o from_o all_o degree_n of_o honour_n as_o for_o the_o jew_n every_o body_n know_v excommunication_n be_v in_o use_n among_o they_o who_o as_o it_o be_v say_v have_v three_o sort_n the_o first_o and_o slight_a which_o they_o call_v niddui_n this_o separate_v the_o guilty_a from_o those_o which_o be_v not_o so_o but_o for_o a_o little_a space_n and_o for_o thirty_o day_n only_o the_o second_o which_o they_o call_v herem_n be_v attend_v with_o anathema_n and_o malediction_n and_o it_o be_v not_o permit_v to_o eat_v nor_o drink_v with_o he_o that_o be_v so_o excommunicate_v and_o it_o be_v probable_a st._n paul_n have_v regard_n to_o this_o kind_n of_o excommunication_n when_o he_o say_v 1_o cor._n 5.2_o i_o write_v unto_o you_o that_o you_o shall_v not_o eat_v with_o such_o a_o one_o the_o three_o kind_n of_o excommunication_n be_v shammatta_n by_o which_o be_v separate_v for_o ever_o from_o the_o communion_n and_o society_n of_o the_o church_n he_o that_o be_v guilty_a see_v then_o that_o jew_n and_o pagan_n have_v exercise_v this_o power_n methinks_v it_o will_v
leave_v off_o as_o he_o do_v testify_v in_o his_o 80_o letter_n it_o may_v be_v think_v that_o the_o synod_n of_o ries_z in_o province_n have_v give_v some_o slight_a endeavour_n to_o the_o first_o practice_n 74._o tom_fw-mi conc_fw-fr gal._n p._n 69._o ibid._n p._n 74._o in_o the_o year_n 439_o when_o it_o confirm_v it_o in_o the_o eight_o cannon_n but_o under_o condition_n that_o time_n be_v quiet_a that_o of_o orange_n explain_v itself_o full_a in_o the_o year_n 441_o cannon_n 29_o say_v it_o be_v difficult_a to_o assemble_v twice_o a_o year_n by_o reason_n of_o sad_a and_o difficult_a time_n the_o second_o thing_n i_o mean_v to_o observe_v be_v 284._o ibid._n p._n 173._o ib._n p._n 268_o 284._o that_o the_o synod_n of_o agde_v in_o languedock_n make_v a_o decree_n in_o the_o 71_o cannon_n by_o which_o it_o reduce_v these_o synodal_n assembly_n to_o hold_v once_o a_o year_n and_o it_o declare_v in_o the_o same_o cannon_n which_o be_v of_o the_o year_n 506_o that_o it_o do_v so_o according_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o father_n have_v respect_n it_o may_v 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o cannon_n of_o orange_n and_o ries_z but_o just_a now_o cite_v the_o 37_o of_o the_o 4_o of_o orleans_n of_o the_o year_n 541_o the_o 23_o an●_n 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o year_n 549_o on_o the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o agde_v 〈◊〉_d ●he_n 18_o of_o the_o 3_o of_o toledo_n allege_n for_o a_o reason_n in_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 589_o the_o length_n of_o the_o way_n and_o poverty_n of_o the_o church_n to._n 4_o conc._n pa._n 505_o 506._o ii_o minister_n shall_v bring_v along_o with_o they_o one_o or_o two_o elder_n at_o the_o most_o choose_v by_o the_o consistory_n and_o the_o say_a minister_n and_o elder_n shall_v show_v their_o deputation_n if_o a_o minister_n come_v alone_o no_o heed_n shall_v be_v take_v of_o the_o certificate_n he_o bring_v along_o with_o he_o no_o more_o than_o there_o shall_v be_v of_o those_o a_o elder_n shall_v produce_v if_o he_o come_v alone_o without_o a_o pastor_n which_o rule_n shall_v be_v of_o force_n in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a assembly_n if_o they_o can_v come_v they_o shall_v make_v their_o excuse_n by_o letter_n of_o the_o which_o the_o brethren_n there_o present_a shall_v be_v judge_n and_o shall_v send_v their_o memoir_n sign_v by_o a_o pastor_n and_o a_o elder_a those_o who_o shall_v fail_v of_o be_v present_a at_o colloques_fw-la and_o at_o provincial_a synod_n without_o lawful_a excuse_n shall_v be_v sensure_v and_o the_o say_v colloques_fw-la and_o provincial_a synod_n may_v final_o judge_v their_o cause_n and_o dispose_v of_o their_o person_n conformity_n there_o be_v in_o this_o establishment_n several_a thing_n to_o be_v consider_v in_o the_o first_o place_n the_o depute_v of_o our_o elder_n with_o the_o pastor_n to_o synod_n which_o be_v very_o agreeable_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n which_o admit_v the_o laity_n into_o their_o synod_n after_o the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o in_o the_o synod_n of_o jerusalem_n make_v mention_n of_o the_o church_n in_o distinguish_v it_o not_o only_o from_o themselves_o but_o also_o from_o ordinary_a person_n which_o they_o design_v by_o the_o term_n of_o elder_n act_n 15.22_o to_o show_v that_o by_o the_o church_n they_o mean_v the_o faithful_a people_n which_o assist_v at_o that_o holy_a assembly_n according_a to_o which_o the_o father_n in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n distinguish_v also_o the_o church_n of_o god_n 30._o a●d_n euseb_n l._n ●_o c._n 30._o from_o bishop_n priest_n and_o deacon_n in_o the_o letter_n write_v to_o dennis_n bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o maximus_n bishop_n of_o alexandria_n and_o to_o all_o the_o church_n to_o inform_v they_o of_o the_o depose_n of_o this_o arch_a heretic_n not_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o think_v that_o the_o entire_a church_n assist_v at_o this_o council_n which_o be_v assemble_v from_o sundry_a province_n but_o they_o assist_v by_o some_o of_o their_o body_n which_o represent_v they_o that_o be_v by_o some_o of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o people_n but_o to_o say_v something_o more_o to_o the_o purpose_n i_o have_v show_v on_o the_o first_o article_n of_o the_o three_o chap._n by_o authority_n of_o fermillian_a and_o of_o the_o african_a code_n that_o the_o elder_n such_o as_o we_o be_v depute_v to_o synod_n with_o the_o pastor_n against_o who_o they_o sometime_o plead_v the_o right_n of_o the_o people_n which_o depute_v they_o the_o second_o thing_n i_o observe_v on_o this_o article_n be_v that_o the_o deputy_n to_o synod_n be_v oblige_v to_o be_v present_a there_o or_o to_o excuse_v themselves_o by_o letter_n and_o if_o their_o excuse_n be_v not_o sufficient_a they_o be_v sensure_v as_o shall_v be_v think_v fit_a in_o the_o colloques_fw-la and_o in_o the_o provincial_a synod_n which_o have_v power_n to_o judge_v definitive_o of_o their_o excuse_n and_o to_o dispose_v of_o their_o person_n which_o also_o be_v according_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o primitive_a christian_n the_o forty_o cannon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n be_v conceive_v in_o these_o term_n the_o bishop_n which_o be_v call_v to_o a_o synod_n must_v not_o neglect_v to_o go_v thither_o and_o if_o any_o one_o do_v neglect_v he_o will_v condemn_v himself_o unless_o some_o sickness_n do_v hinder_v he_o the_o 19_o of_o chalcedon_n require_v that_o one_o shall_v reprove_v in_o a_o brotherly_a way_n those_o which_o fail_v of_o come_v although_o they_o be_v in_o good_a health_n and_o that_o they_o be_v hinder_v by_o any_o extraordinary_a business_n which_o may_v not_o be_v defer_v in_o france_n no_o other_o excuse_n will_v be_v admit_v but_o that_o of_o sickness_n as_o appear_v by_o a_o great_a many_o cannon_n and_o among_o other_o by_o that_o of_o the_o first_o of_o epaume_n by_o the_o 1_o of_o the_o 2_o of_o orleans_n by_o the_o 80_o letter_n of_o auitus_n bishop_n of_o vienna_n and_o by_o several_a other_o decree_n which_o i_o forbear_v to_o cite_v the_o council_n of_o agde_v in_o the_o 35_o cannon_n join_v to_o sickness_n some_o command_n of_o the_o king_n next_o to_o which_o it_o deprive_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n till_o the_o next_o synod_n those_o which_o have_v fail_v to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o former_a and_o as_o it_o deprive_v they_o for_o that_o time_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n it_o also_o deprive_v they_o from_o the_o charity_n of_o their_o brethren_n that_o be_v from_o the_o other_o bishop_n to_o which_o the_o council_n of_o tarragona_n in_o the_o year_n 517_o reduce_v in_o the_o vi_o cannon_n all_o the_o punishment_n of_o those_o bishop_n which_o neglect_v to_o be_v present_a at_o the_o synod_n where_o they_o have_v be_v call_v by_o the_o metropolitan_o and_o excuse_n none_o but_o they_o which_o be_v hinder_v by_o sickness_n the_o 15_o of_o the_o 11_o of_o toledo_n assemble_v anno_fw-la 575_o excommunicate_v they_o for_o one_o year_n if_o they_o be_v not_o hinder_v by_o some_o sickness_n or_o by_o some_o inevitable_a necessity_n the_o 76_o of_o the_o african_a code_n will_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v content_a with_o the_o communion_n of_o their_o church_n the_o v._o cannon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o merrida_fw-la of_o which_o i_o will_v speak_v on_o the_o 10_o article_n of_o the_o ix_o chap._n excuse_v those_o who_o be_v hinder_v by_o sickness_n or_o by_o order_n of_o the_o prince_n as_o to_o what_o our_o discipline_n say_v that_o if_o the_o pastor_n come_v alone_o no_o heed_n shall_v be_v take_v of_o the_o memorial_n he_o shall_v bring_v nor_o of_o those_o the_o elder_n bring_v if_o he_o come_v without_o the_o minister_n it_o agree_v not_o ill_a with_o what_o we_o read_v in_o the_o 100_o cannon_n of_o the_o african_a code_n where_o a_o bishop_n complain_v of_o his_o church_n but_o because_o the_o elder_n the_o church_n have_v depute_v to_o defend_v its_o cause_n against_o the_o bishop_n do_v not_o appear_v the_o council_n refer_v the_o judgement_n of_o this_o affair_n to_o a_o certain_a number_n of_o bishop_n whereof_o some_o be_v nominate_v by_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v dissatisfy_v with_o his_o flock_n and_o the_o rest_n be_v leave_v to_o be_v name_v by_o the_o elder_n although_o absent_a as_o for_o the_o memorial_n whereof_o mention_n be_v make_v in_o this_o article_n more_o may_v be_v see_v of_o it_o in_o what_o i_o shall_v say_v on_o the_o three_o article_n of_o the_o nine_o chapter_n iii_o those_o church_n which_o have_v several_a minister_n shall_v depute_v they_o by_o turn_n to_o colloques_fw-la and_o synod_n conformity_n this_o article_n be_v ground_v on_o that_o that_o minister_n may_v not_o pretend_v any_o authority_n one_o over_o the_o other_o as_o i_o have_v make_v appear_v on_o the_o sixteenth_o article_n of_o the_o first_o chapter_n and_o have_v no_o power_n one_o
over_o another_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a that_o to_o maintain_v this_o equality_n that_o when_o there_o be_v several_a in_o one_o and_o the_o same_o church_n they_o shall_v alternative_o be_v depute_v to_o synod_n and_o colloques_fw-la iv_o minister_n and_o elder_n depute_a to_o colloques_fw-la and_o provincial_a synod_n shall_v come_v thither_o at_o the_o common_a charge_n of_o their_o church_n conformity_n i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o in_o the_o first_o century_n conductor_n of_o christian_a church_n do_v observe_v much_o formality_n when_o they_o assemble_v for_o the_o decide_n of_o any_o difference_n all_o thing_n be_v do_v with_o so_o much_o simplicity_n humane_a passion_n be_v exclude_v that_o every_o one_o speak_v as_o he_o be_v inspire_v of_o god_n read_v what_o eusebius_n relate_v of_o the_o two_o synod_n which_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o three_o century_n against_o paul_n of_o samosatia_n 29._o hist_o l._n 7._o cap._n 27_o 28_o 29._o and_o i_o be_o certain_a the_o mark_n of_o the_o simplicity_n i_o have_v now_o mention_v will_v be_v find_v in_o they_o but_o in_o process_n of_o time_n humane_a passion_n be_v mingle_v with_o charity_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o establish_v some_o method_n in_o these_o assembly_n and_o choose_v some_o one_o among_o the_o bishop_n to_o propose_v the_o matter_n which_o be_v to_o be_v deliberate_v to_o gather_v the_o voice_n and_o moderate_v the_o whole_a action_n a_o honour_n which_o be_v common_o confer_v either_o to_o promotion_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o he_o that_o be_v the_o elder_a minister_n or_o to_o personal_a merit_n by_o reason_n of_o one_o great_a learning_n and_o sometime_o also_o for_o the_o greatness_n and_o eminency_n of_o the_o city_n whereof_o one_o be_v bishop_n palmas_n as_o the_o elder_a of_o the_o bishop_n of_o pontus_n 85._o ep_v ad_fw-la ep●●_n privine_a viennees_n tom._n 1._o conc._n gall._n p._n 85._o preside_v in_o a_o synod_n which_o be_v there_o hold_v upon_o occasion_n of_o celebrate_v easter_n as_o eusebius_n relate_v in_o the_o 23_o chap._n of_o the_o five_o book_n of_o his_o history_n to_o this_o example_n may_v be_v add_v what_o be_v do_v by_o leo_n i._o in_o the_o v._o century_n in_o favour_n of_o leoncius_n bishop_n of_o frejus_n in_o the_o upper_a narbonne_n have_v not_o the_o passion_n which_o he_o express_v against_o hillary_n bishop_n of_o arles_n make_v he_o violate_v the_o law_n of_o justice_n and_o equity_n in_o deprive_v he_o the_o right_a whereof_o he_o be_v just_o in_o possession_n of_o assemble_v synod_n and_o which_o according_a to_o the_o discipline_n of_o those_o time_n belong_v to_o his_o see_n to_o invest_v leoncius_n with_o it_o because_o he_o be_v the_o elder_a bishop_n of_o the_o province_n and_o about_o the_o year_n 397_o the_o first_o council_n of_o turin_n bestow_v on_o proclus_n bishop_n of_o marseilles_n the_o precedence_n over_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o second_o narbonne_n 28._o p●●d_n p._n 27_o 28._o not_o so_o much_o in_o consideration_n of_o the_o city_n whereof_o he_o be_v bishop_n as_o in_o consideration_n of_o his_o age_n and_o merit_n in_o fine_a the_o ecclesiastical_a government_n be_v whole_o frame_v after_o the_o model_n of_o the_o civil_a and_o politic_a this_o right_a of_o precedence_n be_v join_v in_o the_o out_o province_n to_o metropolitan_a bishop_n except_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n where_o this_o privilege_n be_v confer_v on_o primate_fw-la and_o in_o that_o country_n be_v call_v primate_n which_o have_v be_v first_o promote_v to_o be_v bishop_n for_o it_o be_v not_o to_o age_n alone_o this_o i_o rerogative_n be_v attribute_v but_o to_o the_o time_n of_o promotion_n our_o discipline_n which_o refer_v this_o to_o election_n do_v nothing_o differ_v from_o what_o be_v practise_v in_o the_o ancient_a church_n before_o the_o establish_n of_o hierarchy_n especial_o when_o precedency_n be_v confer_v on_o person_n for_o their_o merit_n which_o can_v not_o be_v do_v but_o by_o plurality_n of_o voice_n because_o for_o the_o most_o part_n one_o judge_n different_o of_o the_o merit_n of_o man_n and_o so_o it_o be_v st._n athanasius_n express_v it_o in_o his_o first_o apology_n that_o hosius_n be_v common_o the_o chief_a and_o precedent_n of_o synod_n a_o honour_n confer_v on_o he_o for_o his_o great_a merit_n and_o perhaps_o to_o for_o his_o age_n as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o latter_a regard_n bestow_v on_o for_o the_o understanding_n of_o this_o article_n it_o be_v necessary_a to_o read_v what_o i_o have_v say_v on_o the_o five_o of_o the_o six_o chap._n to_o which_o may_v be_v add_v that_o synod_n have_v be_v institute_v for_o the_o good_a and_o edification_n of_o the_o church_n it_o be_v more_o than_o reasonable_a they_o shall_v be_v charge_v with_o the_o expense_n needful_a to_o assist_v at_o those_o assembly_n especial_o see_v the_o maintenance_n they_o allow_v to_o their_o minister_n be_v so_o small_a that_o it_o be_v not_o sufficient_a for_o their_o subsistence_n as_o it_o often_o happen_v among_o we_o v._o the_o church_n which_o shall_v refuse_v to_o allow_v their_o minister_n conveniency_n for_o repair_v to_o colloques_fw-la and_o synod_n shall_v be_v advertise_v to_o do_v what_o be_v fit_a and_o in_o default_n thereof_o so_o that_o minister_n be_v constrain_v to_o go_v at_o their_o own_o charge_n after_o two_o or_o three_o admonition_n they_o shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o ministry_n and_o the_o expense_n make_v by_o the_o say_a minister_n shall_v be_v repay_v by_o the_o church_n to_o who_o they_o be_v send_v liberty_n be_v give_v to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o ingrateful_a church_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n which_o shall_v be_v give_v by_o the_o provincial_a synod_n conformity_n this_o establishment_n be_v a_o continuance_n of_o the_o former_a what_o i_o have_v observe_v on_o that_o may_v serve_v for_o a_o commentary_n on_o this_o vi_o if_o there_o shall_v happen_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o a_o church_n and_o the_o pastor_n and_o that_o to_o compose_v it_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v be_v advertise_v two_o several_a time_n of_o the_o time_n and_o place_n of_o the_o colloque_n and_o synod_n and_o refuse_v to_o attend_v the_o say_a colloque_n or_o synod_n notwithstanding_o absence_n of_o one_o of_o the_o party_n may_v proceed_v on_o to_o judgement_n conformity_n the_o hundred_o cannon_n of_o the_o african_a code_n which_o i_o cite_v on_o the_o second_o article_n do_v authorize_v this_o establishment_n and_o justify_v the_o conformity_n of_o our_o discipline_n with_o the_o primitive_a vii_o in_o each_o synod_n as_o well_o provincial_a as_o national_a shall_v be_v elect_v with_o a_o slow_a voice_n by_o full_a consent_n one_o of_o the_o pastor_n to_o preside_v with_o one_o or_o two_o to_o write_v his_o business_n shall_v be_v to_o govern_v and_o moderate_v the_o whole_a session_n to_o advise_v of_o the_o place_n day_n and_o hour_n on_o which_o the_o assemble_v and_o sit_v of_o the_o synod_n shall_v hold_v to_o propose_v and_o offer_v thing_n that_o shall_v be_v in_o deliberation_n to_o take_v every_o one_o voice_n in_o particular_a to_o declare_v the_o major_a part_n and_o pronounce_v the_o conclusion_n also_o to_o take_v care_n that_o every_o one_o speak_v by_o order_n and_o not_o confuse_o to_o impose_v silence_n on_o such_o as_o be_v contentious_a and_o if_o they_o will_v not_o obey_v to_o make_v they_o go_v out_o to_o consider_v of_o their_o censure_v and_o correction_n to_o make_v remonstrance_n and_o answer_n to_o those_o which_o desire_v counsel_n or_o that_o send_v letter_n to_o the_o synod_n moreover_o to_o preside_v at_o the_o censure_n which_o shall_v be_v make_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o sit_v the_o whole_a according_a to_o the_o advice_n of_o all_o the_o assembly_n and_o no_o otherwise_o and_o he_o himself_o also_o shall_v be_v subject_a to_o censure_v his_o office_n shall_v expire_v at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o synod_n and_o it_o shall_v be_v at_o the_o choice_n of_o the_o follow_a synod_n to_o elect_v he_o or_o another_o the_o moderator_n also_o of_o colloques_fw-la shall_v be_v govern_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n conformity_n the_o great_a council_n of_o nice_a in_o the_o six_o cannon_n reserve_v to_o each_o province_n its_o right_n and_o privilege_n that_o one_o may_v not_o intermeddle_v in_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o other_o nor_o usurp_v its_o power_n and_o authority_n to_o this_o establishment_n may_v be_v apply_v the_o second_o and_o six_o cannon_n of_o the_o first_o ecumenical_a council_n of_o constantinople_n the_o viii_o of_o ephesus_n the_o 9_o and_o 17_o of_o chalcedon_n the_o 12_o and_o 15_o of_o antioch_n the_o 19_o 28_o and_o 125_o of_o the_o african_a code_n with_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n to_o pope_n cellestin_n in_o the_o same_o code_n in_o number_n 138._o st._n cyprian_n teach_v almost_o the_o same_o thing_n about_o 170_o year_n
humility_n of_o his_o heart_n and_o of_o the_o homage_n he_o owe_v to_o almighty_a god_n unless_o some_o may_v be_v hinder_v to_o do_v it_o by_o sickness_n or_o otherwise_o the_o judgement_n whereof_o shall_v be_v leave_v to_o his_o own_o constancy_n conformity_n the_o ancient_a christian_n be_v wont_a to_o kneel_v at_o prayer_n as_o eusebius_n testify_v in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a history_n st._n chrysostom_n in_o his_o 18_o homily_n on_o the_o 2_o to_o the_o corinthian_n say_v that_o he_o bow_v to_o the_o ground_n and_o synesius_n in_o his_o 57_o epistle_n that_o he_o kneel_v down_o at_o his_o prayer_n and_o that_o in_o that_o posture_n of_o a_o beggar_n he_o desire_v death_n rather_o than_o a_o bishopric_n nevertheless_o it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 2_o century_n they_o begin_v to_o pray_v stand_v on_o sunday_n and_o during_o the_o interval_n of_o time_n betwixt_o easter_n to_o whitsuntide_n tertullian_n assure_v we_o so_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o crown_n and_o with_o he_o the_o author_n of_o question_n to_o the_o orthodox_n in_o the_o work_v of_o st._n justin_n martyr_n in_o the_o 115_o question_n a_o practice_n authorise_v by_o the_o great_a council_n of_o nice_a in_o the_o 20_o cannon_n on_o account_n of_o those_o which_o use_v otherwise_o in_o the_o time_n of_o st._n jerom_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o 4_o and_o 5_o century_n the_o decree_n of_o nice_a be_v follow_v and_o he_o also_o touch_v the_o use_v of_o this_o custom_n in_o his_o preface_n on_o the_o ephesian_n where_o he_o observe_v that_o from_o easter_n to_o whitsuntide_n it_o be_v a_o time_n of_o joy_n and_o victory_n during_o which_o say_v he_o we_o do_v not_o bend_v the_o knee_n and_o do_v not_o prostrate_v towards_o the_o earth_n 161._o tom._n 6._o pag._n 161._o but_o arise_v with_o the_o lord_n we_o fly_v up_o to_o the_o high_a heaven_n he_o observe_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o his_o dialogue_n against_o the_o luciferian_o chap._n 4._o st._n paul_n nevertheless_o do_v the_o contrary_a for_o we_o read_v in_o the_o 20_o chap._n of_o the_o act_n ver_fw-la 36._o that_o have_v discourse_v with_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o ephesus_n he_o kneel_v down_o and_o pray_v with_o they_o all_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o 16_o verse_n of_o the_o same_o chapter_n that_o it_o be_v betwixt_o easter_n and_o whitsuntide_n st._n luke_n observe_v also_o in_o the_o 21_o chap._n verse_n the_o 5_o of_o the_o same_o book_n of_o act_n that_o the_o apostle_n depart_v from_o tyre_n about_o the_o same_o time_n be_v accompany_v with_o the_o disciple_n and_o brethren_n of_o the_o place_n with_o their_o wife_n and_o child_n they_o kneel_v down_o and_o pray_v moreover_o this_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a christian_n which_o i_o but_o now_o mention_v show_v that_o it_o be_v ever_o their_o manner_n to_o pray_v kneel_v which_o be_v the_o most_o become_a and_o decent_a posture_n to_o procure_v the_o mercy_n of_o god_n as_o the_o author_n of_o question_n to_o the_o orthodox_n do_v declare_v because_o indeed_o the_o creature_n can_v never_o too_o much_o humble_v himself_o before_o the_o sovereign_a majesty_n of_o his_o maker_n in_o who_o presence_n he_o must_v prostrate_v himself_o and_o confess_v his_o vileness_n and_o nothingness_n say_v to_o he_o with_o abraham_n i_o be_o but_o dust_n and_o ash_n and_o as_o they_o pray_v kneel_v in_o the_o primitive_a church_n there_o be_v no_o doubt_n to_o be_v make_v but_o they_o also_o pray_v bareheaded_a such_o doubtless_o be_v those_o common_a prayer_n and_o supplication_n which_o be_v make_v in_o their_o assembly_n as_o justin_n martyr_n and_o tertullian_n do_v testify_v in_o their_o apology_n as_o for_o sing_v of_o psalm_n it_o be_v what_o have_v ever_o be_v practise_v in_o christian_a assembly_n st._n paul_n recommend_v it_o to_o the_o colossian_n in_o these_o term_n 5.19_o col._n 3.16_o see_v eph._n 5.19_o let_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n dwell_v in_o you_o rich_o in_o all_o wisdom_n teach_v and_o admonish_v one_o another_o in_o psalm_n and_o hymn_n and_o spiritual_a song_n sing_v with_o grace_n in_o your_o heart_n to_o the_o lord_n pliny_n the_o second_o in_o his_o relation_n to_o the_o emperor_n trajan_n of_o the_o christian_n in_o asia_n and_o of_o their_o assembly_n before_o day_n light_n for_o fear_n of_o persecution_n he_o observe_v among_o other_o thing_n 97._o lib._n 10._o ep._n 97._o that_o they_o sing_v hymn_n to_o jesus_n christ_n as_o to_o a_o god_n tertullian_n make_v mention_n of_o this_o letter_n of_o pliny_n to_o trajan_n in_o the_o 2_o chap._n of_o his_o apology_n and_o in_o the_o 39_o he_o speak_v of_o these_o spiritual_a song_n which_o christian_n sing_v to_o god_n in_o his_o time_n especial_o the_o psalm_n of_o david_n have_v ever_o be_v high_o esteem_v in_o the_o church_n which_o have_v find_v the_o sing_n of_o they_o so_o comfortable_a and_o save_a that_o it_o have_v ever_o be_v practise_v without_o interruption_n the_o 17_o cannon_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o laodicea_n prescribe_v the_o manner_n of_o sing_v they_o in_o the_o assembly_n it_o will_v be_v endless_a to_o relate_v all_o the_o father_n have_v say_v in_o commendation_n of_o these_o divine_a hymn_n the_o praise_n whereof_o they_o have_v endeavour_v to_o strive_v who_o shall_v most_o exalt_v they_o especial_o st._n basil_n st._n ambrose_n st._n chrysostom_n theodoret_n and_o several_a other_o therefore_o i_o will_v content_v myself_o in_o produce_v what_o be_v say_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o christian_a topography_n that_o the_o psalm_n of_o david_n be_v sing_v in_o all_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n and_o that_o they_o be_v almost_o in_o every_o body_n mouth_n as_o well_o great_a as_o small_a and_o that_o in_o each_o church_n they_o be_v sing_v 61._o ap●d_a alla●●um_n de_fw-fr lib._n graee_fw-la pag._n 61._o and_o they_o be_v often_o read_v than_o the_o write_n of_o the_o prophet_n or_o any_o other_o sacred_a monument_n ii_o the_o congregation_n of_o believer_n be_v also_o appoint_v to_o sing_v the_o praise_n of_o god_n and_o to_o comfort_n and_o fortify_v themselves_o by_o the_o use_n of_o psalm_n all_o shall_v be_v advertise_v to_o carry_v their_o psalm_n book_n to_o church_n and_o those_o who_o by_o disdain_n shall_v neglect_v to_o have_v they_o shall_v be_v sensure_v as_o also_o those_o which_o shall_v not_o be_v uncover_v in_o the_o time_n of_o sing_v as_o well_o before_o as_o after_o sermon_n and_o also_o during_o the_o time_n of_o celebrate_v the_o sacrament_n conformity_n see_v prayer_n and_o sing_a psalm_n be_v thing_n essential_a to_o piety_n our_o discipline_n do_v just_o prescribe_v the_o manner_n and_o mean_n to_o do_v it_o as_o become_v and_o to_o declare_v those_o worthy_a of_o censure_n which_o shall_v transgress_v their_o ordinance_n it_o require_v the_o same_o thing_n in_o the_o time_n of_o celebrate_v the_o sacrament_n and_o in_o desire_v it_o it_o nothing_o differ_v from_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n which_o have_v so_o great_a respect_n for_o baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n that_o it_o suffer_v not_o the_o catechumeny_n energumeny_n or_o penitent_n to_o be_v present_a at_o celebration_n of_o one_o or_o the_o other_o call_v they_o both_o terrible_a mystery_n iii_o in_o time_n of_o great_a persecution_n or_o of_o plague_n war_n famine_n or_o other_o great_a affliction_n also_o when_o election_n be_v to_o be_v make_v of_o minister_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o at_o the_o time_n of_o enter_v into_o the_o synod_n one_o may_v if_o necessity_n require_v one_o or_o more_o day_n have_v public_a prayer_n with_o fast_v yet_o without_o scruple_n or_o superstition_n all_o do_v with_o great_a caution_n and_o consideration_n and_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v advertise_v to_o conform_v one_o with_o another_o in_o celebrate_v a_o fast_a as_o near_o as_o they_o can_v according_a to_o convenience_n of_o time_n and_o place_n conformity_n tertullian_n be_v turn_v montanist_n and_o by_o consequence_n a_o enemy_n of_o catholic_n and_o the_o orthodox_n 545._o cap._n 2._o p._n 545._o who_o he_o treat_v injurious_o and_o after_o a_o unchristian_a manner_n tertullian_n i_o say_v reproach_n they_o in_o his_o book_n of_o abstinence_n which_o he_o write_v express_o against_o they_o he_o reproach_n they_o that_o they_o fast_v voluntary_o according_a to_o the_o subject_n and_o occasion_n they_o have_v for_o it_o and_o in_o the_o same_o book_n he_o say_v that_o the_o bishop_n be_v wont_a to_o appoint_v the_o people_n to_o fast_v when_o the_o church_n have_v need_v to_o humble_v itself_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n extr._n ibid_fw-la cap._n 13._o p._n 551_o extr._n and_o that_o it_o be_v in_o fear_n of_o some_o evil_n that_o threaten_v it_o this_o be_v the_o manner_n of_o the_o ancient_a christian_n in_o celebrate_v of_o
in_o several_a part_n of_o his_o work_n particular_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o solitary_n 855._o tom._n 1._o p_o 855._o where_o he_o say_v that_o the_o nature_n of_o piety_n and_o religion_n be_v not_o to_o constrain_v but_o to_o persuade_v after_o the_o example_n of_o our_o saviour_n who_o force_v no_o body_n but_o leave_v it_o at_o every_o body_n choice_n to_o follow_v he_o say_v to_o all_o the_o world_n if_o any_o one_o will_v come_v after_o i_o and_o to_o his_o disciple_n and_o you_o will_v not_o you_o also_o go_v after_o which_o he_o extreme_o blame_v the_o conduct_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n who_o at_o the_o desire_n of_o the_o arrian_n torment_v the_o catholic_n and_o use_v great_a violence_n to_o make_v they_o declare_v in_o his_o favour_n violence_n which_o he_o exaggerate_v with_o comparison_n too_o strong_a the_o which_o i_o forbear_v to_o write_v i_o may_v allege_v other_o testimony_n of_o the_o father_n but_o i_o will_v not_o be_v too_o tedious_a therefore_o it_o shall_v suffice_v to_o observe_v 388._o pag._n 388._o that_o there_o be_v mention_n in_o mr._n justel_v african_n code_n of_o a_o law_n that_o be_v publish_v by_o the_o which_o it_o be_v leave_v to_o every_o body_n free_a choice_n to_o embrace_v the_o christian_a religion_n the_o emperor_n jovian_a which_o succeed_v julian_n the_o apostate_n 〈◊〉_d hist_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 25._o 〈◊〉_d be_v praise_v in_o socrates_n in_o that_o he_o have_v suffer_v every_o body_n to_o make_v profession_n of_o what_o religion_n he_o please_v ammianus_n marcellinus_n have_v not_o fail_v to_o praise_v for_o the_o same_o thing_n the_o great_a valentinian_n who_o succeed_v jovian_a in_o the_o empire_n ma●●em_n lib._n 9_o tit_n 16._o the_o male_n &_o ma●●em_n in_o his_o thirty_o book_n which_o the_o prince_n testify_v of_o himself_o in_o the_o theodocian_n code_n where_o he_o declare_v that_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o begin_v to_o reign_v he_o make_v law_n whereby_o every_o body_n have_v liberty_n to_o profess_v the_o religion_n wherein_o he_o have_v be_v instruct_v and_o train_v up_o i_o can_v tell_v if_o i_o shall_v mention_v constantine_n pagonat_n or_o the_o hairy_a who_o in_o the_o letter_n he_o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n on_o occasion_n of_o the_o six_o universal_a council_n he_o assemble_v at_o constantinople_n 11._o tom._n 5._o conc._n pag._n 11._o he_o speak_v to_o he_o in_o this_o manner_n we_o may_v excite_v and_o exhort_v all_o the_o world_n to_o amend_v and_o to_o join_v with_o the_o christian_n but_o we_o will_v not_o constrain_v any_o body_n but_o i_o know_v i_o ought_v not_o and_o examine_v this_o matter_n without_o speak_v of_o the_o emperor_n mar●i●n_n by_o who_o authority_n the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v assemble_v in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 451_o for_o in_o the_o letter_n he_o write_v to_o the_o archimandrites_n and_o to_o the_o friar_n of_o jerusalem_n and_o the_o part_n thereabouts_o he_o say_v speak_v of_o this_o council_n that_o no_o body_n be_v constrain_v by_o his_o order_n to_o subscribe_v and_o consent_n to_o it_o and_o see_v here_o the_o reason_n he_o give_v for_o say_v he_o 488._o tom._n 3._o gonc_fw-fr p._n 488._o we_o will_v not_o force_v or_o hale_v any_o body_n into_o the_o way_n of_o truth_n by_o threat_n nor_o violence_n word_n become_v that_o wise_a prince_n and_o which_o deserve_v to_o be_v grave_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o all_o sovereign_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v for_o the_o honour_n of_o charlemagne_n 7._o collect._n part_n 2._o pag._n 179._o cap._n 7._o that_o he_o have_v so_o act_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o saxon_n and_o not_o to_o have_v threaten_v with_o death_n those_o among_o they_o as_o refuse_v to_o be_v baptize_v v._o the_o child_n of_o those_o also_o which_o be_v call_v saracen_n may_v be_v receive_v to_o baptism_n in_o the_o reform_a church_n on_o the_o condition_n abovementioned_a provide_v also_o they_o may_v be_v void_a of_o all_o presumption_n on_o account_n of_o any_o former_a baptism_n receive_v and_o after_o serious_a remonstrance_n make_v to_o godfather_n to_o consult_v how_o they_o may_v best_o discharge_v the_o promise_n and_o obligation_n they_o make_v to_o the_o church_n and_o moreover_o that_o godfather_n and_o godmother_n charge_v themselves_o with_o the_o maintenance_n and_o instruction_n of_o the_o child_n conformity_n this_o article_n be_v much_o like_o the_o former_a it_o need_v no_o other_o explication_n than_o that_o i_o have_v make_v on_o the_o four_o where_o i_o have_v observe_v several_a thing_n vi_o baptism_n shall_v not_o be_v administer_v but_o in_o church_n assembly_n where_o there_o be_v a_o church_n public_o settle_v and_o where_o there_o be_v not_o a_o public_a church_n and_o the_o father_n and_o mother_n by_o reason_n of_o sickness_n fear_v to_o have_v their_o child_n christen_v at_o church_n the_o minister_n shall_v prudent_o advise_v what_o to_o do_v in_o the_o matter_n however_o that_o there_o be_v the_o form_n of_o a_o church_n together_o with_o exhortation_n and_o prayer_n but_o if_o there_o be_v no_o church_n and_o that_o a_o assembly_n be_v not_o to_o be_v have_v the_o minister_n shall_v make_v no_o scruple_n to_o baptize_v the_o infant_n of_o a_o believer_n present_v to_o he_o with_o prayer_n and_o exhortation_n conformity_n the_o fifty_o nine_o cannon_n of_o the_o vi_o ecumenical_a council_n in_o the_o year_n 692_o forbid_v administer_a baptism_n in_o oratory_n in_o private_a house_n it_o require_v it_o shall_v be_v perform_v in_o the_o catholic_n church_n 339._o tom._n 5._o conc._n pag._n 339._o threaten_v to_o depose_v the_o churchman_n which_o obey_v not_o this_o decree_n and_o to_o excommunicate_v the_o laity_n which_o shall_v violate_v it_o nevertheless_o the_o same_o council_n permit_v to_o do_v it_o by_o advice_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o place_n cannon_n thirty_o first_o although_o the_o fifty_o eighth_n of_o that_o of_o laodicea_n have_v absolute_o prohibit_v to_o bishop_n and_o priest_n in_o the_o four_o century_n to_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n in_o private_a house_n but_o the_o difficulty_n be_v to_o know_v what_o the_o council_n mean_v by_o the_o catholic_n church_n 517._o tom_n 5._o conc._n p._n 517._o when_o it_o forbid_v christen_v any_o where_n else_o a_o expression_n which_o i_o also_o find_v in_o the_o preliminary_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a where_o it_o be_v say_v the_o bishop_n go_v ad_fw-la luteram_fw-la of_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n the_o term_n luter_n which_o come_v from_o the_o greek_a 〈◊〉_d signify_v a_o basin_n or_o vessel_n to_o wash_v the_o foot_n and_o i_o can_v tell_v if_o in_o the_o word_n i_o examine_v it_o may_v not_o be_v put_v for_o the_o baptismal_a fountain_n after_o all_o i_o be_o incline_v to_o think_v that_o by_o the_o catholic_n church_n here_o speak_v of_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v the_o church_n appoint_v for_o all_o the_o people_n in_o general_n and_o where_o there_o be_v public_a font_n according_a to_o which_o there_o be_v mention_n in_o the_o capitulary_n of_o our_o king_n 30._o tom._n 2._o conc._n gal._n p._n 152._o ibid._n pag._n 30._o of_o baptismal_a church_n so_o call_v because_o there_o be_v a_o public_a font_n or_o christen_a place_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o seven_o cannon_n of_o the_o synod_n which_o pepin_n the_o father_n of_o charlemagne_n cause_v to_o be_v hold_v apud_fw-la vernum_fw-la anno_fw-la dom._n 750_o there_o must_v not_o be_v a_o public_a font_n in_o any_o parish_n but_o there_o where_o the_o bishop_n who_o the_o parish_n be_v do_v appoint_v 674._o tom._n 16._o bibl._n pal._n pag._n 674._o flodoard_v in_o his_o second_o book_n of_o his_o history_n of_o the_o church_n of_o reims_n chap._n 19_o call_v these_o church_n baptismal_a title_n which_o distinguish_v they_o from_o other_o which_o have_v not_o font_n and_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o there_o be_v in_o each_o city_n but_o one_o baptismal_a church_n where_o all_o the_o people_n be_v christen_v which_o be_v also_o observe_v in_o village_n in_o the_o country_n so_o it_o must_v be_v understand_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o meaux_n in_o the_o year_n 845_o 566._o tom._n 3._o conc._n gal._n can._n 48._o p._n 45_o tom._n 1._o conc._n gal._n c._n 1●_n pag._n 566._o that_o no_o priest_n presume_v to_o baptise_v but_o in_o the_o baptismal_a church_n which_o be_v in_o the_o village_n as_o for_o oratory_n it_o be_v not_o permit_v there_o to_o build_v font_n as_o we_o find_v by_o the_o nine_o epistle_n of_o the_o second_o book_n of_o gregory_n i._o of_o the_o 71_o and_o 83_o of_o the_o seven_o of_o the_o three_o of_o the_o 8_o of_o this_o practice_n continue_v also_o in_o pope_n zacharies_n time_n who_o also_o write_v so_o to_o pepin_n in_o the_o year_n 747_o in_o use_v the_o very_a term_n of_o gregory_n i._n but_o in_o process_n
virgin_n proceed_v from_o their_o blood_n and_o seed_n and_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o his_o body_n be_v form_v not_o only_o of_o the_o virgin_n according_a to_o what_o the_o apostle_n say_v that_o he_o be_v of_o the_o seed_n of_o david_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n that_o he_o be_v make_v of_o a_o woman_n and_o that_o he_o partake_v of_o flesh_n and_o blood_n like_o other_o child_n answ_n yes_o quest_n do_v you_o not_o believe_v that_o the_o baptise_v of_o young_a infant_n be_v ground_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o continual_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n answ_n yes_o quest_n do_v you_o not_o with_o all_o your_o heart_n renounce_v the_o error_n of_o those_o which_o deny_v it_o and_o be_v you_o not_o sorry_a for_o have_v hitherto_o slight_v it_o answ_n yes_o quest_n do_v you_o not_o believe_v that_o the_o establish_n of_o magistrate_n be_v a_o ordnance_n of_o god_n to_o the_o which_o those_o which_o refuse_v to_o submit_v draw_v down_o damnation_n on_o themselves_o and_o that_o all_o manner_n of_o obedience_n after_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v due_a to_o they_o answ_n yes_o quest_n do_v you_o not_o believe_v that_o this_o good_a god_n which_o call_v we_o all_o by_o the_o preach_a of_o his_o word_n to_o life_n and_o salvation_n have_v institute_v some_o sign_n and_o sacrament_n in_o his_o church_n which_o seal_n and_o confirm_v to_o we_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n which_o be_v offer_v to_o we_o by_o the_o preach_a of_o the_o gospel_n answ_n yes_o quest_n how_o many_o sacrament_n think_v you_o there_o be_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n answ_n two_o to_o wit_n baptism_n and_o the_o lord_n supper_n quest_n do_v you_o not_o desire_v to_o be_v instruct_v in_o the_o nature_n and_o use_v of_o baptism_n which_o you_o desire_v in_o the_o church_n answ_n yes_o quest_n the_o minister_n shall_v say_v our_o lord_n show_v we_o all_o in_o what_o poverty_n and_o misery_n we_o be_v bear_v in_o tell_v we_o we_o must_v be_v regenerate_v for_o if_o it_o be_v needful_a our_o nature_n be_v renew_v to_o have_v admission_n into_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n it_o be_v a_o sign_n it_o be_v whole_o sinful_a and_o curse_a therein_o therefore_o he_o warn_v we_o to_o be_v humble_v and_o cast_v down_o in_o our-selve_n and_o in_o this_o manner_n he_o prepare_v we_o to_o desire_v and_o seek_v his_o favour_n whereby_o all_o the_o perverseness_n and_o evil_n of_o our_o first_o nature_n shall_v be_v abolish_v for_o we_o be_v not_o capable_a of_o receive_v it_o until_o first_o we_o have_v whole_o lay_v aside_o all_o trust_n in_o our_o own_o strength_n wisdom_n righteousness_n even_o to_o condemn_v all_o that_o be_v in_o we_o now_o when_o he_o have_v show_v we_o our_o misery_n he_o than_o comfort_v we_o by_o his_o mercy_n promise_v to_o regenerate_a we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o a_o holy_a life_n which_o shall_v be_v to_o we_o as_o the_o entrance_n into_o his_o kingdom_n this_o regeneration_n consist_v in_o two_o part_n which_o be_v that_o we_o shall_v deny_v ourselves_o not_o follow_v the_o way_n of_o our_o own_o reason_n our_o pleasure_n and_o own_o will_n but_o subject_v our_o understanding_n and_o heart_n to_o the_o wisdom_n and_o will_n of_o god_n mortify_v all_o that_o be_v of_o we_o and_o of_o the_o flesh_n afterward_o we_o shall_v follow_v the_o light_n of_o god_n to_o comply_v and_o submit_v to_o his_o holy_a will_n as_o he_o command_v we_o by_o his_o word_n and_o bad_n we_o by_o his_o spirit_n the_o accomplishment_n both_o of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o be_v in_o our_o lord_n jesus_n who_o death_n and_o passion_n be_v of_o such_o virtue_n that_o partake_v thereof_o we_o be_v as_o it_o be_v dead_a to_o sin_n to_o the_o end_n that_o our_o fleshly_a lust_n shall_v be_v mortify_v in_o like_a manner_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o resurrection_n we_o may_v be_v raise_v to_o a_o new_a life_n which_o be_v god_n be_v govern_v and_o conduct_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n which_o work_v in_o we_o thing_n well_o please_v in_o his_o sight_n nevertheless_o the_o first_o and_o principal_a point_n of_o our_o salvation_n be_v that_o by_o his_o mercy_n he_o pardon_v and_o forgive_v we_o all_o our_o sin_n not_o impute_v they_o to_o we_o but_o blot_v they_o out_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o rise_v up_o in_o judgement_n against_o we_o all_o these_o grace_n be_v bestow_v on_o we_o when_o he_o be_v please_v to_o ingraff_n we_o into_o his_o church_n by_o baptism_n for_o in_o this_o sacrament_n he_o assure_v we_o of_o the_o pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n and_o to_o this_o end_n he_o have_v appoint_v the_o sign_n of_o water_n to_o show_v we_o that_o as_o by_o this_o element_n bodily_a filthiness_n be_v wash_v away_o he_o will_v also_o wash_v and_o purify_v our_o soul_n that_o there_o may_v be_v no_o spot_n in_o they_o then_o he_o show_v we_o our_o renovation_n the_o which_o lie_v as_o have_v be_v say_v in_o the_o mortification_n of_o our_o flesh_n and_o in_o a_o spiritual_a life_n which_o he_o work_v in_o we_o so_o shall_v we_o receive_v double_a grace_n and_o benefit_n of_o our_o god_n in_o baptism_n provide_v we_o do_v not_o frustrate_v the_o virtue_n of_o this_o sacrament_n by_o our_o ingratitude_n which_o be_v that_o we_o have_v therein_o certain_a assurance_n that_o god_n will_v be_v a_o merciful_a father_n to_o we_o not_o impute_v our_o sin_n and_o offence_n second_o that_o he_o will_v assist_v we_o by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v resist_v the_o devil_n sin_n and_o the_o lust_n of_o the_o flesh_n even_o till_o we_o triumph_v over_o they_o to_o live_v in_o the_o liberty_n of_o his_o kingdom_n which_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o righteousness_n see_v then_o it_o be_v so_o that_o these_o two_o thing_n be_v accomplish_v in_o we_o by_o the_o love_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o virtue_n and_o substance_n of_o baptism_n be_v comprise_v in_o he_o and_o indeed_o we_o have_v no_o other_o cleanse_v but_o his_o blood_n nor_o no_o other_o renew_v but_o in_o his_o death_n and_o resurrection_n but_o as_o he_o communicate_v to_o we_o his_o riches_n and_o blessing_n by_o his_o word_n so_o also_o he_o distribute_v they_o to_o we_o by_o his_o sacrament_n now_o herein_o appear_v the_o wonderful_a love_n of_o god_n towards_o we_o that_o those_o grace_n he_o bestow_v upon_o we_o have_v before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o messiah_n be_v restrain_v within_o the_o people_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o partition_n wall_n which_o separate_v the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n be_v take_v away_o by_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n christ_n he_o shed_v abroad_o the_o water_n of_o his_o save_v grace_n in_o such_o abundant_a manner_n on_o the_o child_n of_o man_n that_o in_o he_o there_o be_v now_o neither_o jew_n nor_o greek_a male_a nor_o female_a circumcision_n nor_o uncircumcision_n nor_o any_o other_o creature_n else_o which_o can_v hinder_v we_o from_o this_o great_a salvation_n that_o jesus_n christ_n will_v be_v preach_v to_o all_o nation_n and_o the_o covenant_n of_o his_o love_n confirm_v by_o baptism_n according_a to_o the_o commission_n give_v to_o his_o apostle_n say_v go_v preach_v to_o all_o nation_n baptise_v they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o son_n and_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o it_o be_v this_o grace_n brother_n which_o you_o desire_v to_o partake_v of_o by_o baptism_n be_v it_o not_o true_a answ_n yes_o quest_n but_o because_o enter_v into_o the_o house_n of_o god_n every_o one_o shall_v take_v care_n of_o his_o way_n fear_v to_o profane_v the_o the_o sanctuary_n in_o adventure_v according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o the_o wise_a man_n lest_o he_o shall_v offer_v the_o sacrifice_n of_o fool_n and_o that_o he_o shall_v be_v cleanse_v from_o the_o leven_n and_o error_n of_o malice_n do_v you_o not_o detest_v all_o the_o error_n which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a doctrine_n teach_v in_o our_o church_n answ_n yes_o quest_n see_v you_o be_v about_o to_o receive_v holy_a baptism_n do_v not_o you_o promise_v to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o lord_n jesus_n heretofore_o confess_v by_o you_o accompany_v it_o with_o a_o holy_a life_n and_o conversation_n and_o to_o employ_v all_o your_o thought_n word_n and_o action_n to_o glorify_v god_n and_o edify_v your_o neighbour_n submit_v yourself_o to_o the_o order_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o the_o discipline_n whereby_o this_o holy_a order_n shall_v inviolable_o be_v maintain_v answ_n yes_o this_o be_v do_v the_o minister_n shall_v add_v let_v we_o pray_v to_o god_n that_o he_o will_v be_v please_v to_o bless_v this_o holy_a action_n and_o shall_v pray_v after_o this_o manner_n lord_n our_o god_n infinite_o wise_a and_o merciful_a we_o praise_v and_o bless_v thy_o holy_a
same_o thing_n the_o three_o council_n of_o toledo_n make_v a_o like_a decree_n thirty_o two_o year_n after_o the_o synod_n of_o paris_n and_o it_o be_v still_o to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o four_o volume_n of_o the_o council_n and_o in_o the_o ten_o cannon_n it_o be_v to_o what_o amount_v the_o 358_o chap._n of_o vii_o book_n of_o the_o capitulary_n of_o charlemagne_n and_o lewis_n the_o debonnaire_a photius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n say_v the_o same_o in_o the_o five_o of_o his_o letter_n take_v out_o of_o a_o ancient_a eastern_a manuscript_n there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o very_a cheat_n that_o have_v forge_v two_o decree_n in_o the_o name_n of_o pope_n evaristas_n 391._o pag._n 391._o but_o have_v in_o the_o first_o of_o they_o teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n and_o word_n for_o word_n as_o it_o be_v express_v in_o the_o capitulary_a but_o now_o cite_v so_o that_o of_o necessity_n one_o must_v have_v borrow_v it_o of_o the_o other_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o judge_v after_o all_o i_o have_v hitherto_o say_v whether_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n do_v march_v in_o the_o step_n of_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n when_o in_o the_o 24_o session_n which_o be_v the_o eight_o under_o pius_n the_o four_o in_o the_o year_n 1563_o and_o in_o the_o first_o chap._n of_o the_o decree_n touch_v the_o reformation_n of_o marriage_n 411._o tom._n 9_o conc._n p._n 411._o it_o anathematise_n those_o which_o affirm_v marriage_n contract_v by_o child_n without_o consent_n of_o the_o father_n and_o mother_n be_v void_a and_o that_o the_o father_n and_o mother_n may_v break_v or_o ratify_v they_o a_o condemnation_n wherein_o pope_n celestin_n the_o first_o be_v concern_v if_o we_o believe_v what_o gratian_n report_v of_o he_o in_o the_o first_o volume_n of_o the_o council_n cap._n 4._o p._n 910._o whereas_o our_o discipline_n add_v that_o if_o father_n and_o mother_n shall_v be_v so_o unreasonable_a as_o not_o to_o consent_v to_o so_o holy_a and_o profitable_a a_o thing_n the_o consistory_n may_v advise_v the_o i_o arty_n to_o have_v their_o recourse_n to_o the_o magistrate_n it_o say_v nothing_o therein_o but_o what_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o ancient_a practice_n as_o we_o find_v by_o the_o letter_n of_o photius_n 392._o pag._n 392._o which_o i_o mention_v for_o he_o declare_v that_o then_o the_o judge_n may_v take_v cognizance_n of_o the_o marriage_n and_o declare_v it_o lawful_a in_o prefer_v the_o protection_n of_o the_o child_n and_o their_o lawful_a desire_n before_o the_o perverseness_n of_o father_n and_o mother_n ii_o as_o for_o those_o which_o be_v of_o age_n and_o in_o possession_n of_o their_o own_o right_n they_o shall_v be_v warn_v by_o the_o minister_n and_o public_a assembly_n of_o the_o church_n not_o to_o make_v any_o promise_n of_o marriage_n but_o in_o presence_n of_o their_o parent_n relation_n neighbour_n and_o good_a friend_n and_o those_o which_o do_v otherwise_o shall_v be_v sensure_v of_o their_o lightness_n and_o slight_a of_o the_o say_a warning_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v the_o say_v promise_n of_o marriage_n be_v make_v with_o invocation_n on_o the_o name_n of_o god_n conformity_n this_o establishment_n be_v make_v to_o prevent_v clandestine_v marriage_n there_o be_v put_v into_o the_o first_o volume_n of_o the_o council_n some_o decree_n attribute_v by_o gratian_n to_o pope_n celestine_n the_o first_o which_o in_o the_o four_o ordain_v that_o parent_n of_o both_o sex_n shall_v be_v present_a to_o witness_v the_o marriage_n paulinus_n bishop_n of_o aquilea_n in_o the_o council_n he_o cause_v to_o assemble_v in_o a_o part_n of_o his_o diocese_n call_v forum-julii_n desire_v the_o neighbour_n and_o chief_a of_o the_o place_n shall_v be_v present_a at_o contract_n of_o marriage_n to_o prevent_v the_o mischief_n may_v ensue_v by_o clandestine_v marriage_n the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o the_o 24_o session_n which_o i_o mention_v on_o the_o other_o article_n and_o in_o the_o same_o decree_n of_o reform_v marriage_n chap._n 1._o will_n that_o it_o be_v do_v in_o presence_n of_o the_o curate_n or_o some_o other_o priest_n that_o supply_v his_o place_n and_o of_o two_o or_o three_o witness_n which_o thing_n be_v renew_v by_o cardinal_n borrome_n in_o the_o five_o and_o six_o council_n of_o milan_n iii_o believer_n which_o be_v of_o age_n although_o they_o have_v be_v marry_v yet_o shall_v so_o far_o honour_v their_o father_n and_o mother_n as_o not_o to_o conclude_v upon_o marriage_n without_o first_o communicate_v it_o to_o they_o and_o for_o not_o so_o do_v shall_v be_v sensure_v by_o the_o consistory_n conformity_n we_o have_v already_o see_v on_o the_o first_o article_n that_o child_n under_o power_n of_o father_n and_o mother_n can_v lawful_o contract_v marriage_n without_o their_o consent_n in_o this_o there_o be_v mention_n of_o those_o which_o have_v already_o be_v marry_v and_o who_o be_v desirous_a to_o marry_v a_o second_o time_n aught_o in_o civility_n to_o impart_v it_o to_o they_o st._n ambrose_n in_o the_o nine_o chap._n of_o the_o first_o book_n touch_v abraham_n require_v that_o the_o widow_n woman_n which_o intend_v to_o remarry_v shall_v refer_v to_o father_n and_o mother_n to_o make_v choice_n of_o the_o person_n which_o she_o ought_v to_o marry_v balzamon_n and_o zonaras_n explain_v the_o 42_o cannon_n of_o st._n basils_n second_o canonical_a epistle_n distinguish_v widow_n which_o be_v under_o the_o power_n of_o any_o relation_n from_o those_o which_o depend_v only_o of_o themselves_o and_o for_o these_o last_o they_o pretend_v they_o be_v at_o liberty_n to_o marry_v to_o who_o they_o please_v so_o it_o be_v in_o the_o lord_n and_o according_a to_o the_o law_n and_o cannon_n but_o as_o for_o the_o other_o they_o think_v they_o ought_v to_o have_v the_o consent_n of_o those_o under_o who_o tuition_n they_o be_v and_o who_o without_o it_o have_v right_a to_o dissolve_v the_o marriage_n there_o be_v in_o the_o three_o tome_n of_o the_o council_n a_o decree_n attribute_v to_o some_o council_n of_o arles_n 823._o pag._n 823._o where_o there_o be_v mention_n of_o the_o marriage_n of_o widow_n and_o of_o the_o consent_n of_o father_n and_o mother_n iv_o father_n and_o mother_n make_v profession_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n who_o idolatrous_a child_n will_v contract_v marriage_n with_o idolatrous_a wife_n shall_v be_v warn_v as_o much_o as_o possible_a to_o divert_v their_o child_n from_o such_o marriage_n and_o especial_o when_o they_o be_v not_o too_o hasty_a the_o father_n shall_v employ_v their_o paternal_a power_n to_o hinder_v they_o if_o they_o can_v prevail_v with_o they_o be_v present_a when_o contract_n marriage_n be_v pass_v they_o shall_v declare_v to_o have_v abhorrence_n of_o the_o idolatry_n wherein_o their_o child_n do_v more_o and_o more_o plunge_v themselves_o which_o be_v do_v the_o say_a father_n may_v consent_v to_o the_o promise_n and_o condition_n concern_v the_o portion_n and_o the_o like_a and_o shall_v represent_v in_o consistory_n the_o endeavour_n they_o have_v use_v to_o prevent_v such_o marriage_n conformity_n we_o shall_v see_v on_o the_o twenty_o article_n that_o it_o be_v prohibit_v to_o the_o orthodox_n to_o marry_v with_o person_n of_o a_o contrary_a religion_n unless_o they_o promise_v to_o embrace_v the_o orthodox_n religion_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v accomplish_v their_o promise_n before_o marriage_n therefore_o the_o father_n and_o mother_n can_v not_o consent_v to_o such_o marriage_n but_o under_o the_o condition_n enjoin_v by_o the_o cannon_n it_o can_v then_o be_v say_v that_o our_o discipline_n differ_v from_o that_o of_o the_o ancient_a christian_n in_o the_o matter_n which_o we_o examine_v and_o the_o which_o shall_v receive_v far_a explanation_n from_o what_o shall_v be_v say_v on_o the_o twenty_o article_n v._o henceforward_o shall_v be_v use_v in_o promise_n and_o contract_n of_o marriage_n term_n of_o the_o future_a tense_n and_o the_o say_a word_n shall_v not_o be_v esteem_v so_o bind_v as_o word_n of_o the_o present_a see_v word_n of_o the_o present_n do_v not_o promise_v marriage_n but_o do_v it_o in_o effect_n nevertheless_o these_o promise_n by_o word_n of_o the_o future_a shall_v not_o be_v dissolve_v without_o great_a and_o lawful_a cause_n conformity_n of_o all_o the_o article_n of_o our_o discipline_n there_o have_v scarce_o any_o one_o be_v so_o often_o touch_v by_o the_o national_a synod_n as_o this_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o difference_n which_o be_v find_v betwixt_o the_o ancient_n and_o modern_a way_n of_o marry_v for_o former_o the_o promise_n of_o marriage_n be_v make_v by_o word_n of_o the_o present_a and_o now_o they_o be_v make_v by_o word_n of_o the_o future_a tense_n according_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o the_o establishment_n of_o this_o same_o discipline_n i_o find_v nothing_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o
ancient_a eastern_a manuscript_n he_o set_v down_o insufficiency_n as_o a_o lawful_a cause_n of_o separation_n with_o free_a liberty_n to_o the_o other_o party_n whither_o the_o man_n or_o woman_n to_o remarry_v xv._o marriage_n shall_v be_v propose_v in_o the_o consistory_n with_o sufficient_a attestation_n of_o promise_n conformity_n this_o establishment_n be_v to_o prevent_v clandestine_a marriage_n i_o will_v show_v on_o the_o 19_o article_n that_o it_o be_v conformable_a to_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n xvi_o baines_n shall_v be_v ask_v in_o place_n where_o the_o party_n do_v reside_v and_o be_v know_v and_o if_o they_o will_v be_v marry_v in_o some_o other_o place_n than_o where_o their_o bane_n have_v be_v call_v they_o shall_v take_v sufficient_a attestation_n that_o they_o have_v be_v publish_v three_o several_a time_n conformity_n pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o make_v answer_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o beavais_n in_o the_o four_o book_n of_o decretal_n 27._o tit._n 1_o de_fw-fr sponsal_n cap._n 27._o make_v mention_n of_o a_o publication_n of_o bane_n and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o latran_n which_o he_o assemble_v in_o the_o year_n 1215_o he_o appoint_v that_o the_o custom_n of_o publish_v bane_n of_o marriage_n in_o church_n observe_v in_o some_o place_n shall_v be_v general_o observe_v in_o all_o place_n 818_o tom._n 7._o conc_fw-fr cap._n 51._o p._n 818_o according_o we_o read_v in_o the_o second_o volume_n of_o dom._n luke_n de_fw-fr achery_n a_o benedictine_n frier_n spirilegium_n that_o nicholas_n bishop_n of_o anger_n be_v prohibit_v in_o the_o year_n 1270_o 222._o pag._n 217_o 221_o 222._o to_o confirm_v or_o celebrate_v any_o marriage_n whatsoever_o until_o publication_n be_v first_o make_v of_o it_o in_o the_o church_n he_o also_o mention_n the_o same_o practice_n in_o another_o synod_n in_o the_o year_n 1274_o 1._o ib._n p._n 255._o tom._n 9_o conc_fw-fr pag._n 411._o decret_n de_fw-mi refor_o matrim_n cap._n 1._o which_o william_n his_o successor_n also_o renew_v in_o the_o year_n 1304._o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o the_o 24_o session_n the_o 11_o of_o november_n 1563._o the_o 8_o under_o pius_n the_o iv_o prescribe_v also_o the_o same_o thing_n cardinal_n borrome_n fail_v not_o to_o confirm_v this_o custom_n and_o to_o recomend_v the_o observe_n of_o it_o in_o his_o council_n at_o milan_n and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v the_o testimony_n i_o have_v allege_v require_v that_o publication_n shall_v be_v make_v in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o party_n contract_v xvii_o bane_n shall_v be_v publish_v three_o several_a sunday_n in_o place_n when_o there_o be_v sermon_n and_o in_o other_o place_n when_o public_a prayer_n may_v be_v say_v however_o the_o publication_n ought_v to_o continue_v the_o space_n of_o 15_o day_n after_o which_o time_n the_o marriage_n may_v be_v solemnize_v in_o the_o assembly_n and_o even_o on_o the_o three_o sunday_n conformity_n the_o same_o testimony_n i_o allege_v on_o the_o forego_n article_n do_v prescribe_v in_o substance_n the_o same_o thing_n as_o our_o discipline_n do_v for_o some_o will_v have_v it_o that_o the_o publication_n now_o speak_v of_o shall_v be_v make_v in_o a_o certain_a time_n which_o shall_v give_v leisure_n to_o those_o who_o will_v oppose_v a_o marriage_n to_o prepare_v their_o reason_n other_o that_o bane_n shall_v be_v ask_v several_a time_n on_o holiday_n other_o to_o the_o number_n of_o three_o several_a time_n xviii_o those_o which_o live_v in_o place_n where_o the_o usual_a exercise_n of_o religion_n be_v not_o establish_v may_v cause_v their_o bane_n to_o be_v publish_v in_o romish_a church_n inasmuch_o as_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n partly_o political_a conformity_n the_o publish_n of_o bane_n be_v a_o thing_n mere_o political_a our_o discipline_n have_v reason_n when_o it_o suffer_v those_o of_o our_o religion_n in_o the_o case_n hint_v at_o to_o have_v they_o do_v in_o temple_n of_o the_o romish_a persuasion_n xix_o the_o church_n shall_v not_o marry_v any_o body_n without_o have_v full_a knowledge_n and_o approbation_n conformity_n beside_o what_o i_o have_v say_v on_o the_o second_o article_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o first_o cannon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o laodicea_n that_o clandestine_a marriage_n be_v condemn_v even_o in_o that_o time_n there_o be_v in_o the_o three_o volume_n of_o council_n a_o decree_n of_o pope_n hormisdas_n take_v out_o of_o gratian_n and_o be_v conceive_v in_o these_o term_n 801._o can._n 2._o pag._n 801._o that_o no_o believer_n of_o what_o quality_n soever_o do_v not_o marry_v clandestine_o and_o in_o secret_a but_o let_v he_o marry_v public_o in_o our_o lord_n 818._o tom._n 3._o conc_fw-fr gal._n pag._n 116._o tom._n 7._o conc_fw-fr pag._n 818._o in_o receive_v the_o priest_n benediction_n this_o hormisdas_n be_v pope_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o 6_o century_n herald_n bishop_n of_o tours_n make_v the_o same_o prohibition_n in_o the_o 130_o chap._n of_o his_o capitulary_a anno_fw-la dom._n 858._o and_o the_o 15_o can._n of_o those_o which_o pope_n innocent_a the_o three_o propose_v and_o cause_v to_o pass_v at_o the_o council_n of_o latteran_n in_o the_o year_n 1215_o contain_v the_o very_a like_o constitution_n it_o be_v therefore_o that_o in_o our_o church_n no_o stranger_n be_v marry_v without_o have_v a_o good_a attestation_n from_o the_o church_n whereof_o he_o be_v member_n to_o know_v if_o the_o bane_n have_v there_o be_v publish_v three_o several_a lord_n day_n without_o any_o opposition_n cardinal_n borrome_n in_o his_o second_o council_n of_o milan_n anno_fw-la dom._n 1569_o decree_v 26_o will_v have_v it_o so_o practise_v 590._o tom._n 9_o conc_fw-fr pag._n 590._o according_a to_o the_o ordinance_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n xx._n when_o one_o of_o the_o party_n be_v of_o a_o contrary_a religion_n the_o promise_n of_o marriage_n shall_v not_o be_v receive_v nor_o publish_v in_o the_o church_n until_o the_o party_n of_o contrary_a religion_n be_v sufficient_o instruct_v do_v protest_v public_o in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o place_n where_o the_o say_a party_n be_v know_v that_o with_o full_a resolution_n he_o renounce_v all_o idolatry_n and_o superstition_n particular_o the_o mass_n and_o will_v by_o god_n assistance_n persevere_v there_a of_o his_o life_n in_o his_o true_a worship_n and_o service_n of_o which_o instruction_n the_o consistory_n shall_v take_v account_n and_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v lawful_a for_o any_o pastor_n or_o consistory_n to_o do_v otherwise_o under_o pain_n of_o be_v suspend_v and_o even_o of_o be_v turn_v out_o of_o their_o office_n conformity_n even_o from_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n the_o orthodox_n be_v forbid_v to_o marry_v with_o person_n which_o be_v not_o of_o their_o communion_n but_o of_o some_o other_o sect_n which_o be_v look_v on_o as_o heretical_a and_o contrary_a 234._o tom._n 1._o conc_fw-fr pag._n 234._o the_o council_n of_o elebori_n or_o eluira_n in_o spain_n in_o the_o year_n 305_o employ_v to_o this_o purpose_n the_o 6_o of_o its_o cannon_n the_o 10_o and_o 31st_o of_o laodicea_n about_o the_o year_n 360_o treat_v of_o the_o same_o thing_n but_o the_o 14_o of_o chalcedon_n be_v more_o full_a for_o it_o prohibit_v those_o kind_n of_o marriage_n unless_o he_o that_o intend_v to_o marry_v a_o orthodox_n maid_n 12._o let._n g._n c._n 12._o do_v promise_n to_o be_v convert_v to_o the_o true_a faith_n the_o friar_n blastares_n in_o his_o pandect_n print_v at_o oxford_n of_o who_o i_o have_v speak_v already_o explain_v this_o cannon_n of_o chalcedon_n make_v two_o considerable_a remark_n first_o that_o the_o consummation_n of_o marriage_n now_o speak_v of_o aught_o to_o be_v defer_v until_o the_o heterodox_n party_n have_v accomplish_v his_o promise_n the_o second_o that_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v require_v of_o latin_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o those_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o they_o desire_v to_o marry_v woman_n that_o be_v orthodox_n a_o evident_a proof_n that_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v esteem_v a_o hetorodox_n church_n by_o the_o greek_n in_o blastares_n time_n which_o be_v in_o the_o fourteen_o century_n i_o may_v allege_v several_a other_o cannon_n against_o the_o marriage_n now_o speak_v of_o 242._o tom._n 1._o conc_fw-fr gall._n pag._n 231._o 242._o as_o the_o 72_o of_o the_o 6_o ecumenical_a council_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o seven_o century_n the_o 19_o of_o the_o 2d_o council_n of_o orleans_n in_o the_o year_n 533._o the_o 6_o of_o that_o of_o auvergne_n assemble_v 2_o year_n after_o and_o the_o 25_o and_o 26_o decree_n of_o the_o 1_o title_n of_o the_o 2d_o council_n of_o milan_n which_o i_o cite_v on_o the_o forego_n article_n if_o from_o council_n we_o pass_v to_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n 240._o tom._n 1_o p_o 239_o 240._o we_o shall_v find_v several_a which_o have_v explain_v themselves_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n
of_o time_n and_o place_n conformity_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n there_o have_v ever_o be_v person_n appoint_v to_o take_v care_n of_o the_o conduct_n of_o those_o which_o be_v member_n of_o it_o and_o to_o watch_v over_o their_o flock_n to_o the_o end_n no_o scandalous_a action_n shall_v be_v commit_v therein_o nothing_o that_o shall_v be_v unbecoming_a the_o profession_n of_o the_o gospel_n origen_n at_o least_o tell_v we_o that_o in_o his_o time_n which_o be_v the_o three_o century_n it_o be_v so_o practise_v for_o he_o declare_v in_o his_o answer_n to_o celsus_n that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o church_n 1658_o lib._n 3._o pag._n 142._o of_o cambridge_n edit_n 1658_o person_n establish_v to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o life_n and_o conversation_n of_o those_o which_o embrace_v the_o christian_a religion_n that_o when_o they_o commit_v any_o evil_a action_n to_o expel_v they_o out_o of_o the_o congregation_n and_o on_o the_o contrary_a to_o receive_v with_o great_a affection_n all_o those_o which_o live_v orderly_o and_o well_o to_o the_o end_n to_o improve_v and_o make_v they_o better_o from_o day_n to_o day_n tertullian_n before_o origen_n 39_o apolog._n c._n 39_o have_v sufficient_o intimate_v this_o same_o practice_n speak_v in_o his_o apologetic_n of_o censure_n inflict_v on_o sinner_n in_o christian_a assembly_n which_o banish_v from_o their_o communion_n those_o which_o be_v convict_v of_o heinous_a offence_n for_o example_n of_o idolatry_n murder_n and_o of_o fornication_n which_o proceed_v show_v there_o be_v in_o each_o church_n person_n entrust_v to_o keep_v watch_n over_o the_o life_n and_o manner_n of_o the_o people_n and_o these_o person_n be_v the_o same_o which_o we_o call_v elder_n which_o also_o be_v the_o name_n st._n austin_n give_v they_o in_o the_o nineteenth_o sermon_n on_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o which_o at_o this_o time_n be_v the_o three_o in_o the_o appendix_n of_o the_o ten_o tome_n in_o this_o sermon_n which_o other_o attribute_v to_o maximus_n bishop_n of_o turin_n and_o which_o be_v the_o 66th_o among_o those_o of_o st._n ambrose_n there_o be_v to_o be_v see_v the_o name_n and_o the_o office_n of_o elder_n the_o same_o in_o effect_n as_o they_o be_v among_o we_o for_o the_o author_n whoever_o he_o be_v have_v observe_v that_o soldier_n and_o those_o in_o any_o office_n can_v not_o bear_v to_o be_v reprove_v and_o to_o be_v tell_v of_o their_o duty_n he_o speak_v after_o this_o manner_n when_o the_o elder_n reprove_v they_o for_o any_o misdemeanour_n and_o that_o any_o of_o they_o be_v ask_v why_o they_o be_v drink_v wherefore_o they_o take_v away_o other_o folk_n good_n wherefore_o they_o commit_v murder_v they_o present_o answer_v what_o will_v you_o have_v i_o do_v be_v one_o of_o the_o world_n and_o a_o soldier_n do_v i_o profess_v to_o be_v a_o friar_n or_o a_o clergyman_n iv_o the_o office_n of_o deacon_n be_v to_o collect_v and_o distribute_v by_o direction_n of_o the_o consistory_n the_o money_n belong_v to_o the_o poor_a to_o prisoner_n and_o to_o sick_a folk_n to_o visit_v and_o have_v care_n of_o they_o conformity_n it_o appear_v by_o chap._n 6._o of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n that_o the_o office_n of_o deacon_n be_v what_o our_o discipline_n do_v represent_v because_o they_o be_v first_o of_o all_o appoint_v to_o serve_v at_o table_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o take_v care_n of_o the_o poor_a oecumenius_n in_o his_o commentary_n on_o this_o chapter_n of_o the_o act_n i_o now_o mention_v observe_v express_o that_o they_o be_v appoint_v to_o distribute_v to_o widow_n and_o orphan_n with_o care_n the_o thing_n necessary_a for_o their_o subsistence_n according_a to_o which_o the_o enemy_n of_o cecilian_a bishop_n of_o carthage_n lay_v it_o to_o his_o charge_n as_o a_o great_a crime_n that_o be_v deacon_n he_o hinder_v people_n from_o give_v meat_n to_o the_o martyr_n whereas_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v carry_v they_o some_o himself_n 1535._o fascicul_n rer_n expet_n &_o fug_v fol._n 32._o vers_fw-la coloniae_fw-la 1535._o cardinal_n julian_n who_o preside_v at_o the_o council_n of_o basle_n remonstrate_v to_o pope_n eugenius_n the_o four_o that_o there_o be_v several_a thing_n he_o ought_v to_o do_v himself_o and_o other_o which_o he_o may_v refer_v to_o the_o care_n of_o those_o which_o be_v under_o he_o after_o the_o example_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o to_o attend_v the_o more_o free_o to_o the_o preach_v of_o the_o word_n institute_v seven_o deacon_n which_o serve_v table_n and_o the_o administration_n of_o thing_n of_o less_o weight_n it_o be_v nevertheless_o true_a 99_o apolog._n 2._o pag._n 99_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o justin_n martyr_n it_o be_v the_o pastor_n that_o distribute_v the_o money_n to_o the_o poor_a which_o be_v appoint_v for_o their_o maintenance_n which_o be_v give_v by_o people_n charity_n but_o this_o distribution_n in_o all_o likelihood_n be_v make_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o deacon_n 39_o cap._n 39_o tertullian_n indeed_o in_o his_o apologetic_n declare_v one_o have_v care_n of_o the_o poor_a of_o orphan_n of_o old_a folk_n of_o those_o which_o have_v lose_v their_o good_n by_o shipwreck_n of_o those_o which_o labour_v in_o mine_n who_o be_v banish_v into_o island_n or_o detain_v in_o prison_n for_o the_o gospel_n sake_n but_o he_o do_v mention_n by_o who_o it_o be_v do_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o time_n of_o cornelius_n its_o bishop_n that_o be_v about_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o three_o century_n 244._o apud_fw-la euseb_n hist_o lib_n 6._o c._n 43._o p._n 244._o maintain_v above_o 1500_o poor_a as_o well_o widow_n as_o other_o who_o be_v reduce_v to_o poverty_n or_o afflict_v with_o sickness_n or_o infirmity_n the_o charity_n of_o that_o of_o antioch_n be_v no_o less_o conspicuous_a than_o that_o of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o we_o find_v by_o some_o of_o st._n chrysostom_n homily_n on_o st._n matthew_n particular_o the_o 67_o and_o 86th_o it_o be_v true_a we_o be_v not_o certain_a that_o the_o deacon_n be_v charge_v with_o the_o care_n of_o these_o two_o church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o cornelius_n and_o of_o st._n chrysostom_n but_o we_o know_v very_o well_o the_o deacon_n among_o we_o attend_v on_o the_o thing_n for_o which_o they_o be_v establish_v by_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v that_o they_o shall_v take_v care_n of_o the_o poor_a and_o necessitous_a according_a to_o their_o primitive_a institution_n it_o be_v on_o this_o account_n that_o fabian_n bishop_n of_o rome_n divide_v among_o seven_o deacon_n in_o the_o three_o century_n the_o fourteen_o quarter_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o the_o end_n they_o shall_v take_v care_n of_o the_o poor_a which_o be_v in_o each_o of_o these_o quarter_n as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o roman_a breviary_n on_o the_o 20_o day_n of_o january_n and_o as_o binnius_n observe_v in_o the_o life_n of_o fabian_n tom._n conc._n pag._n 114._o but_o what_o the_o deacon_n do_v at_o first_o be_v in_o time_n perform_v by_o the_o ministry_n of_o oeconom_n and_o other_o of_o which_o the_o ancient_a canon_n make_v so_o frequent_a mention_n in_o such_o a_o way_n nevertheless_o that_o the_o bishop_n have_v the_o chief_a power_n in_o the_o distribution_n which_o however_o be_v not_o do_v without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o these_o deputy_n when_o they_o have_v take_v the_o place_n and_o office_n of_o those_o first_o deacon_n and_o that_o it_o be_v so_o i_o explain_v what_o zozoman_n say_v of_o st._n epiphanius_n lib._n 7._o chap._n 27._o read_v what_o shall_v be_v say_v on_o the_o second_o art_n of_o the_o four_o chap._n v._o the_o office_n of_o deacon_n be_v not_o to_o preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n nevertheless_o if_o necessity_n require_v the_o consistory_n may_v choose_v certain_a elder_n and_o deacon_n to_o cacechise_v in_o family_n as_o also_o it_o be_v permit_v to_o elder_n in_o absence_n of_o the_o pastor_n to_o read_v public_a prayer_n on_o working-day_n be_v choose_v by_o the_o consistory_n for_o that_o purpose_n and_o that_o they_o follow_v the_o usual_a form_n in_o read_v the_o canonical_a book_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n as_o for_o the_o deacon_n who_o be_v wont_a to_o catechise_v public_o in_o some_o province_n the_o inconvenience_n which_o have_v already_o or_o may_v hereafter_o ensue_v be_v hear_v and_o consider_v the_o church_n where_o this_o custom_n be_v not_o yet_o introduce_v be_v desire_v to_o forbear_v and_o the_o other_o where_o it_o be_v to_o continue_v and_o to_o order_v that_o the_o say_v deacon_n if_o they_o be_v find_v capable_a will_v enter_v into_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o gospel_n as_o soon_o as_o they_o can_v possible_o conformity_n what_o i_o have_v say_v of_o the_o office_n of_o deacon_n do_v high_o
to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n this_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o discretion_n of_o province_n and_o there_o the_o minister_n shall_v meet_v with_o one_o elder_a of_o each_o church_n conformity_n our_o colloques_fw-la do_v in_o a_o manner_n agree_v with_o the_o diocesan_n synod_n of_o each_o bishop_n gall._n tom._n 1._o conc._n gall._n like_o that_o of_o anacharius_fw-la bishop_n of_o auxer_n in_o the_o year_n 578_o or_o to_o the_o assembly_n of_o some_o neighbour_a bishop_n to_o decide_v the_o difference_n which_o happen_v in_o the_o adjacent_a part_n it_o be_v to_o what_o do_v amount_v the_o cannon_n 11_o 20_o 28_o 125._o of_o the_o african_a code_n of_o mr._n justel_n however_o it_o be_v it_o appear_v by_o the_o 100_o cannon_n of_o the_o same_o code_n that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a elder_n and_o of_o the_o order_n of_o layick_n assist_v at_o these_o sort_n of_o judgement_n 144._o ap●d_a cypr._n contral_a p._n steph._n pag._n 144._o i_o know_v not_o but_o firmillian_a bishop_n of_o cesaria_n in_o cappadocia_n have_v this_o custom_n in_o his_o mind_n when_o he_o write_v to_o st._n cyprian_n we_o do_v meet_v every_o year_n pastor_n and_o elder_n to_o regulate_v the_o thing_n commit_v to_o our_o care_n ii_o such_o assembly_n and_o colloques_fw-la shall_v be_v hold_v to_o consider_v and_o compose_v difference_n which_o shall_v happen_v in_o the_o say_a church_n as_o be_v appoint_v by_o the_o discipline_n and_o general_o to_o provide_v for_o what_o shall_v be_v know_v to_o be_v expedient_a and_o necessary_a for_o the_o good_a and_o support_v of_o the_o church_n conformity_n to_o this_o second_o article_n may_v be_v apply_v the_o cannon_n of_o the_o african_a code_n which_o i_o cite_v on_o the_o first_o and_o also_o join_v thereto_o the_o five_o cannon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a by_o which_o we_o find_v that_o one_o of_o the_o motive_n of_o the_o convocation_n of_o ecclesiastical_a assembly_n be_v to_o appease_v difference_n and_o to_o preserve_v unity_n and_o concord_n the_o twentieth_o of_o the_o synod_n of_o antioch_n tend_v to_o the_o same_o end_n iii_o there_o also_o minister_n shall_v preach_v the_o word_n of_o god_n every_o one_o by_o his_o turn_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v be_v know_v what_o care_n every_o one_o take_v in_o exercise_v himself_o in_o the_o study_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o in_o the_o method_n and_o form_n of_o treat_v of_o it_o conformity_n minister_n be_v establish_v for_o instruct_v of_o their_o flock_n it_o be_v the_o duty_n of_o their_o superior_n to_o take_v cognisance_n of_o their_o conduct_n and_o of_o the_o progress_n they_o make_v in_o the_o study_n of_o divinity_n and_o because_o it_o may_v be_v judge_v by_o their_o preach_v our_o discipline_n have_v very_o well_o appoint_v that_o minister_n shall_v expound_v the_o word_n of_o god_n every_o one_o by_o turn_n in_o the_o colloques_fw-la iv_o the_o authority_n of_o colloques_fw-la be_v inferior_a to_o that_o of_o provincial_a synod_n as_o those_o of_o consistory_n be_v to_o colloques_fw-la conformity_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o 21_o and_o 125_o cannon_n of_o the_o african_a code_n that_o appeal_n may_v be_v make_v from_o the_o judgement_n of_o neighbour_a bishop_n who_o assembly_n be_v much_o the_o same_o of_o colloques_fw-la it_o appear_v i_o say_v that_o appeal_n may_v be_v make_v to_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n or_o to_o the_o primate_fw-la of_o their_o province_n and_o it_o be_v by_o the_o establishment_n of_o the_o same_o discipline_n that_o appeal_n be_v make_v from_o a_o provincial_a synod_n to_o a_o great_a synod_n such_o as_o be_v the_o council_n of_o all_o the_o province_n of_o a_o diocese_n it_o be_v just_a what_o be_v prescribe_v by_o the_o ancient_a cannon_n as_o the_o xii_o of_o antioch_n the_o vi_o of_o the_o first_o general_n of_o constantinople_n the_o ix_o and_o xvii_o of_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n v._o the_o colloques_fw-la and_o synod_n shall_v deliberate_v of_o limit_v the_o extent_n of_o place_n wherein_o each_o minister_n shall_v exercise_n his_o ministry_n conformity_n this_o establishment_n be_v also_o very_o conformable_a to_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n of_o christian_n according_a to_o which_o the_o synod_n take_v cognisance_n of_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o bishop_n and_o of_o its_o extent_n as_o also_o of_o the_o place_n where_o they_o be_v to_o exercise_n their_o ministry_n from_o thence_o proceed_v all_o the_o prohibition_n make_v they_o of_o undertake_v nothing_o without_o the_o bound_n prescribe_v they_o as_o have_v be_v show_v on_o the_o first_o chapter_n vi_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o colloques_fw-la amicable_a and_o brotherly_a censure_n shall_v be_v make_v as_o well_o by_o the_o pastor_n as_o the_o elder_n which_o shall_v be_v there_o present_a of_o all_o thing_n which_o shall_v be_v think_v fit_a to_o represent_v to_o they_o conformity_n the_o four_o council_n of_o orleans_n in_o the_o year_n 541._o make_v a_o rule_n like_o this_o in_o the_o 37_o cannon_n which_o require_v that_o metropolitan_o shall_v once_o a_o year_n assemble_v their_o synod_n to_o the_o end_n that_o whilst_o the_o brethren_n be_v assemble_v the_o needful_a censure_n shall_v be_v make_v with_o charity_n which_o be_v also_o verify_v by_o the_o principal_a motive_n of_o convocate_a this_o assembly_n which_o be_v as_o i_o just_a now_o say_v to_o determine_v all_o difference_n and_o to_o appease_v all_o quarrel_n and_o contest_v chap._n viii_o of_o provincial_a synod_n article_n i._n in_o each_o province_n the_o pastor_n of_o each_o church_n shall_v assemble_v once_o a_o year_n or_o twice_o as_o they_o may_v which_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o prudence_n and_o discretion_n of_o the_o synod_n conformity_n christian_n have_v ever_o esteem_v synod_n so_o necessary_a that_o they_o have_v be_v very_o careful_a to_o assemble_v they_o when_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n require_v it_o for_o as_o eusebius_n say_v in_o the_o 51_o chap._n of_o the_o book_n of_o the_o life_n of_o constantine_n great_a controversy_n can_v be_v determine_v but_o by_o synod_n at_o the_o beginning_n and_o even_o during_o the_o heat_n of_o persecution_n when_o there_o arrive_v any_o trouble_n in_o a_o particular_a church_n all_o the_o other_o concern_v themselves_o in_o it_o and_o the_o minister_n by_o a_o mere_a movement_n of_o charity_n and_o without_o any_o form_n of_o convocation_n assemble_v of_o themselves_o to_o make_v peace_n and_o to_o compose_v difference_n and_o in_o these_o assembly_n humane_a passion_n be_v banish_v and_o jesus_n christ_n there_o preside_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n they_o consult_v together_o and_o resolve_v without_o ceremony_n and_o formality_n what_o be_v expedient_a it_o be_v much_o after_o this_o method_n they_o proceed_v against_o paul_n of_o samosatia_n bishop_n of_o antioch_n when_o he_o have_v publish_v his_o impiety_n 29._o euseb_n hist_o lib._n 7._o c._n 27_o 28_o 29._o the_o pastor_n of_o church_n as_o eusebius_n say_v be_v run_v thither_o from_o all_o part_n as_o against_o a_o enemy_n which_o destroy_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n and_o i_o can_v tell_v if_o the_o synod_n of_o iconia_n in_o phrygia_n mention_v by_o fermillian_a bishop_n of_o caesaria_n in_o cappadocia_n be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o kind_n of_o those_o hold_v against_o paul_n of_o samosatia_n in_o the_o same_o century_n 146._o apud_fw-la cypr._n contr_n ep._n steph._n p._n 146._o for_o he_o say_v they_o be_v assemble_v in_o that_o place_n from_o gallacia_n cilicia_n and_o other_o adjacent_a province_n to_o confirm_v what_o have_v already_o be_v conclude_v touch_v the_o reiteration_n of_o the_o baptism_n of_o heretic_n but_o what_o bishop_n do_v at_o first_o by_o a_o principle_n of_o charity_n they_o be_v in_o time_n oblige_v to_o do_v also_o by_o duty_n the_o cannon_n require_v it_o of_o they_o in_o effect_v the_o v._o cannon_n of_o the_o first_o council_n of_o nice_a appoint_v to_o hold_v synod_n twice_o a_o year_n in_o each_o province_n the_o twenty_o of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n renew_v the_o same_o decree_n and_o thence_o it_o be_v undoubted_o at_o he_o which_o forge_v the_o cannon_n of_o the_o apostle_n borrow_v the_o 37_o which_o contain_v the_o same_o establishment_n the_o nineteenth_o of_o chalcedon_n have_v complain_v that_o in_o the_o province_n be_v not_o celebrate_v the_o synod_n prescribe_v by_o the_o cannon_n it_o appoint_v they_o be_v hold_v twice_o a_o year_n conformable_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n there_o be_v a_o number_n of_o other_o cannon_n which_o prescribe_v the_o same_o thing_n and_o which_o i_o forbear_v to_o allege_v to_o observe_v two_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o matter_n which_o we_o examine_v the_o first_o that_o auitus_n bishop_n of_o vienna_n in_o dauphine_n which_o flourish_v about_o the_o end_n of_o the_o v._o century_n and_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o vi_o endeavour_v to_o restore_v the_o ancient_a custom_n which_o insensible_o be_v
church_n that_o can_v inform_v i_o the_o manner_n that_o be_v use_v in_o contract_n of_o marriage_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o promise_v of_o marriage_n be_v conceive_v by_o word_n of_o the_o present_a or_o by_o word_n of_o the_o future_a tense_n i_o only_o judge_v by_o thing_n happen_v in_o the_o latter_a age_n that_o in_o some_o place_n these_o promise_n be_v make_v by_o word_n of_o the_o present_a which_o at_o last_o be_v forbid_v in_o effect_n 205._o tom._n 11._o spicil_n p._n 205._o in_o the_o year_n 262._o nicholas_n gilant_a bishop_n of_o anger_n be_v make_v this_o synodal_n decree_n we_o appoint_v our_o priest_n that_o they_o do_v not_o consent_v but_o to_o forbid_v public_o in_o their_o church_n to_o contract_v marriage_n by_o word_n of_o the_o present_a until_o one_o be_v come_v to_o the_o nuptial_a benediction_n the_o five_o council_n of_o milan_n under_o cardinal_n borrome●●●scribes_v ●●●scribes_z the_o same_o thing_n in_o the_o year_n 1●79_n 633._o tom._n 9_o conc._n p_o 633._o vi_o as_o for_o consanguinity_n and_o affinity_n believer_n can_v contract_v marriage_n any_o other_o way_n than_o be_v permit_v by_o the_o king_n edict_n conformity_n when_o one_o life_n in_o a_o country_n one_o must_v submit_v to_o the_o law_n establish_v for_o the_o quiet_a of_o the_o subject_n as_o to_o what_o concern_v the_o thing_n of_o this_o life_n and_o it_o be_v by_o this_o maxim_n that_o we_o careful_o observe_v the_o edict_n and_o law_n of_o our_o king_n touch_v the_o degree_n of_o affinity_n and_o consanguinity_n in_o marriage_n vii_o it_o be_v by_o no_o mean_n lawful_a to_o go_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o demand_v to_o be_v dispense_v in_o the_o hindrance_n of_o marriage_n because_o in_o do_v hereof_o one_o own_v his_o tyranny_n but_o one_o may_v in_o a_o degree_n not_o forbid_v of_o god_n though_o prohibit_v by_o the_o civil_a power_n address_v one self_o to_o the_o king_n conformity_n as_o we_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n power_n we_o do_v not_o vouchsafe_v to_o address_v ourselves_o to_o he_o to_o obtain_v any_o dispensing_n touch_v the_o hindrance_n of_o marriage_n it_o be_v to_o the_o king_n we_o address_v ourselves_o to_o be_v dispense_v of_o degree_n forbid_v by_o the_o civil_a law_n of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o not_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n viii_o the_o cognation_n call_v spiritual_a be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o comprise_v nor_o understand_v by_o the_o word_n of_o consanguinity_n or_o affinity_n in_o the_o king_n edict_n and_o can_v hinder_v the_o contract_n of_o marriage_n conformity_n the_o more_o i_o read_v our_o discipline_n the_o more_o i_o therein_o find_v a_o resemblance_n with_o that_o of_o the_o ancient_a christian_n i_o speak_v of_o christian_n of_o the_o first_o century_n for_o those_o which_o have_v apply_v themselves_o to_o the_o read_v ecclesiastical_a antiquity_n may_v perceive_v the_o change_n that_o have_v succeed_v in_o process_n of_o time_n in_o the_o ancient_a discipline_n as_o well_o as_o in_o the_o doctrine_n the_o establishment_n i_o be_o about_o to_o examine_v be_v a_o authentic_a proof_n for_o until_o the_o seven_o century_n or_o at_o least_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 6_o it_o be_v never_o think_v of_o to_o propose_v in_o the_o work_n of_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n nor_o in_o council_n spiritual_a cognation_n as_o lawful_a hindrance_n of_o wedlock_n if_o the_o epistle_n attribute_v to_o pope_n deus-dedit_a be_v true_a it_o will_v not_o be_v deny_v that_o since_o the_o seven_o century_n these_o pretend_a spiritual_a cognation_n be_v admit_v in_o the_o church_n but_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a it_o be_v false_a and_o spurious_a it_o need_v only_o to_o read_v it_o to_o find_v that_o it_o be_v false_a and_o forge_a beside_o that_o a_o good_a while_n since_o 676._o pseudoisid_n pag._n 676._o the_o late_a mr._n blondell_n have_v show_v clear_o in_o the_o judgement_n he_o give_v of_o it_o that_o it_o be_v the_o work_n of_o a_o cheat_n and_o impostor_n i_o know_v there_o be_v in_o the_o 2d_o volumn_n of_o the_o work_n of_o gregory_n the_o great_a certain_a decree_n in_o one_o of_o which_o one_o anathematise_n he_o that_o shall_v have_v marry_v his_o spiritual_a gossip_n so_o that_o if_o these_o cannon_n be_v true_o he_o one_o must_v own_v that_o these_o spiritual_a cognation_n have_v be_v use_v in_o the_o latin_a church_n since_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o the_o 6_o century_n but_o what_o make_v i_o doubt_v if_o these_o constitution_n be_v he_o be_v that_o dom._n luke_n de_fw-fr achery_n who_o have_v cause_v they_o to_o be_v print_v in_o the_o 2_o volume_n of_o his_o spicilegium_fw-la among_o a_o ancient_a collection_n of_o cannon_n which_o he_o think_v to_o have_v be_v antecedent_n to_o the_o 9th_o century_n do_v indeed_o represent_v they_o under_o the_o name_n of_o gregory_n but_o something_o dubious_o not_o say_v of_o what_o gregory_n so_o that_o they_o may_v as_o well_o be_v of_o some_o other_o gregory_n for_o example_n to_o the_o second_o or_o three_o and_o so_o the_o one_o must_v come_v down_o to_o the_o 8_o century_n in_o which_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o fill_v the_o roman_a see_n in_o effect_n in_o that_o century_n 5._o tom._n 2._o conc_fw-fr gal._n p._n 5._o spiritual_a affinity_n be_v frequent_o in_o the_o west_n a_o hindrance_n of_o marriage_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o first_o cannon_n of_o a_o synod_n hold_v at_o metz_n under_o pepin_n in_o the_o year_n 753_o by_o the_o 5_o chap._n of_o the_o 5_o book_n of_o capitularys_n 15_o ibid._n p._n 15_o and_o by_o the_o answer_n of_o pope_n stephen_n the_o second_o to_o the_o four_o question_n be_v make_v he_o on_o this_o matter_n as_o also_o by_o the_o 12_o cannon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o compeigne_n anno_fw-la 757._o 43_o ibid._n p._n 43_o since_o that_o time_n the_o latin_n have_v almost_o always_o prohibit_v marriage_n of_o person_n betwixt_o who_o there_o be_v any_o spiritual_a affinity_n as_o for_o have_v present_v a_o child_n together_o to_o be_v christen_v i_o observe_v nevertheless_o in_o the_o 10_o century_n that_o a_o certain_a bishop_n call_v azo_n 118._o tom._n 8._o spicil_n p._n 113._o ad_fw-la 118._o maintain_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n against_o atto_n bishop_n of_o verceil_n that_o these_o spiritual_a affinity_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o hinder_v marriage_n whereas_o atto_n do_v not_o defend_v himself_o to_o any_o purpose_n but_o by_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o prince_n and_o sovereign_n especial_o by_o that_o of_o luitprandus_fw-la who_o reign_v then_o in_o italy_n it_o be_v not_o therefore_o to_o be_v wonder_v if_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n authorize_v this_o sort_n of_o affinity_n the_o 11_o of_o november_n anno_fw-la 1563_o in_o the_o 24_o session_n 412._o tom._n 9_o conc_fw-fr pag._n 412._o under_o pius_n the_o 9th_o as_o be_v explain_v in_o the_o second_o chap._n of_o the_o decree_n of_o reformation_n of_o marriage_n although_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 9th_o century_n it_o be_v not_o exact_o observe_v in_o all_o the_o west_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o cannon_n 47_o and_o 48_o of_o the_o council_n of_o tribur_n of_o which_o i_o will_v speak_v of_o on_o the_o 13_o article_n the_o greek_a church_n will_v in_o nothing_o come_v behind_o the_o latin_a in_o this_o matter_n for_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o 8_o century_n the_o 6_o ecumenical_a council_n assemble_v at_o constantinople_n make_v a_o decree_n when_o after_o have_v establish_v that_o the_o affinity_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v more_o considerable_a than_o that_o of_o the_o body_n the_o father_n declare_v it_o be_v come_v to_o their_o knowledge_n that_o in_o some_o place_n those_o which_o have_v present_v child_n to_o be_v baptize_v do_v after_o marry_v the_o mother_n of_o those_o child_n when_o they_o be_v become_v widow_n which_o the_o council_n forbid_v to_o be_v do_v for_o the_o future_a and_o do_v even_o make_v null_a marriage_n of_o this_o kind_n which_o shall_v be_v make_v after_o the_o prohibition_n '_o and_o condemn_v those_o which_o contract_v they_o to_o the_o punishment_n of_o fornicator_n we_o learn_v by_o this_o decree_n that_o till_o then_o no_o difficulty_n be_v make_v in_o divers_a place_n to_o make_v these_o kind_n of_o marriage_n and_o to_o pass_v by_o the_o consideration_n of_o spiritual_a cognation_n which_o may_v be_v betwixt_o those_o as_o make_v they_o nevertheless_o since_o the_o 6_o century_n the_o emperor_n justinian_n have_v ordain_v that_o spiritual_a cognation_n shall_v be_v a_o lawful_a hindrance_n of_o marriage_n 26._o lib._n 5._o cod._n just_o do_fw-mi 4._o cap._n 26._o although_o the_o greek_a church_n make_v no_o decree_n before_o that_o i_o but_o now_o cite_v and_o which_o be_v after_o that_o of_o justiniam_fw-la above_o a_o 100_o year_n also_o the_o greek_a canonist_n which_o have_v search_v the_o original_a of_o this_o custom_n have_v go_v no_o far_o